11060 lines
479 KiB
Plaintext
11060 lines
479 KiB
Plaintext
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Edition of At the Back of the North Wind
|
|
|
|
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
At the Back of the North Wind, by George MacDonald
|
|
|
|
March, 1995 [Etext #225]
|
|
|
|
|
|
Proofed by Martin Ward.
|
|
If you find an error in this text, please contact Martin Ward
|
|
(Martin.Ward@durham.ac.uk)
|
|
|
|
|
|
**The Project Gutenberg Etext of At the Back of the North Wind**
|
|
******This file should be named nwind10.txt or nwind10.zip********
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, nwind12.txt
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, nwind10a.txt
|
|
|
|
|
|
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
|
|
of the official release dates, for time for better editing. We
|
|
have this as a goal to accomplish by the end of the year but we
|
|
cannot guarantee to stay that far ahead every month after that.
|
|
|
|
Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
|
|
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $4
|
|
million dollars per hour this year as we release some eight text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from $2 million.
|
|
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
|
|
Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
GET 0INDEX.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
AT THE BACK OF THE NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
BY GEORGE MAC DONALD
|
|
|
|
Author of "Dealings with Fairies," "Ranald Bannerman," etc., etc.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I
|
|
|
|
THE HAY-LOFT
|
|
|
|
|
|
I HAVE been asked to tell you about the back of the north wind.
|
|
An old Greek writer mentions a people who lived there,
|
|
and were so comfortable that they could not bear it any longer,
|
|
and drowned themselves. My story is not the same as his.
|
|
I do not think Herodotus had got the right account of the place.
|
|
I am going to tell you how it fared with a boy who went there.
|
|
|
|
He lived in a low room over a coach-house; and that was not by any
|
|
means at the back of the north wind, as his mother very well knew.
|
|
For one side of the room was built only of boards, and the boards were
|
|
so old that you might run a penknife through into the north wind.
|
|
And then let them settle between them which was the sharper!
|
|
I know that when you pulled it out again the wind would be after it
|
|
like a cat after a mouse, and you would know soon enough you were not
|
|
at the back of the north wind. Still, this room was not very cold,
|
|
except when the north wind blew stronger than usual: the room I
|
|
have to do with now was always cold, except in summer, when the sun
|
|
took the matter into his own hands. Indeed, I am not sure whether
|
|
I ought to call it a room at all; for it was just a loft where they
|
|
kept hay and straw and oats for the horses.
|
|
|
|
And when little Diamond--but stop: I must tell you that his father,
|
|
who was a coachman, had named him after a favourite horse,
|
|
and his mother had had no objection:--when little Diamond, then,
|
|
lay there in bed, he could hear the horses under him munching away
|
|
in the dark, or moving sleepily in their dreams. For Diamond's
|
|
father had built him a bed in the loft with boards all round it,
|
|
because they had so little room in their own end over the coach-house;
|
|
and Diamond's father put old Diamond in the stall under the bed,
|
|
because he was a quiet horse, and did not go to sleep standing,
|
|
but lay down like a reasonable creature. But, although he was
|
|
a surprisingly reasonable creature, yet, when young Diamond woke
|
|
in the middle of the night, and felt the bed shaking in the blasts
|
|
of the north wind, he could not help wondering whether, if the wind
|
|
should blow the house down, and he were to fall through into the manger,
|
|
old Diamond mightn't eat him up before he knew him in his night-gown.
|
|
And although old Diamond was very quiet all night long, yet when he
|
|
woke he got up like an earthquake, and then young Diamond knew what
|
|
o'clock it was, or at least what was to be done next, which was--
|
|
to go to sleep again as fast as he could.
|
|
|
|
There was hay at his feet and hay at his head, piled up in great
|
|
trusses to the very roof. Indeed it was sometimes only through
|
|
a little lane with several turnings, which looked as if it
|
|
had been sawn out for him, that he could reach his bed at all.
|
|
For the stock of hay was, of course, always in a state either of slow
|
|
ebb or of sudden flow. Sometimes the whole space of the loft,
|
|
with the little panes in the roof for the stars to look in, would lie
|
|
open before his open eyes as he lay in bed; sometimes a yellow
|
|
wall of sweet-smelling fibres closed up his view at the distance
|
|
of half a yard. Sometimes, when his mother had undressed him
|
|
in her room, and told him to trot to bed by himself, he would creep
|
|
into the heart of the hay, and lie there thinking how cold it was
|
|
outside in the wind, and how warm it was inside there in his bed,
|
|
and how he could go to it when he pleased, only he wouldn't just yet;
|
|
he would get a little colder first. And ever as he grew colder,
|
|
his bed would grow warmer, till at last he would scramble out
|
|
of the hay, shoot like an arrow into his bed, cover himself up,
|
|
and snuggle down, thinking what a happy boy he was. He had not
|
|
the least idea that the wind got in at a chink in the wall, and blew
|
|
about him all night. For the back of his bed was only of boards
|
|
an inch thick, and on the other side of them was the north wind.
|
|
|
|
Now, as I have already said, these boards were soft and crumbly.
|
|
To be sure, they were tarred on the outside, yet in many places they
|
|
were more like tinder than timber. Hence it happened that the soft
|
|
part having worn away from about it, little Diamond found one night,
|
|
after he lay down, that a knot had come out of one of them, and that the
|
|
wind was blowing in upon him in a cold and rather imperious fashion.
|
|
Now he had no fancy for leaving things wrong that might be set right;
|
|
so he jumped out of bed again, got a little strike of hay, twisted it up,
|
|
folded it in the middle, and, having thus made it into a cork,
|
|
stuck it into the hole in the wall. But the wind began to blow loud
|
|
and angrily, and, as Diamond was falling asleep, out blew his cork
|
|
and hit him on the nose, just hard enough to wake him up quite,
|
|
and let him hear the wind whistling shrill in the hole. He searched
|
|
for his hay-cork, found it, stuck it in harder, and was just dropping
|
|
off once more, when, pop! with an angry whistle behind it, the cork
|
|
struck him again, this time on the cheek. Up he rose once more,
|
|
made a fresh stopple of hay, and corked the hole severely.
|
|
But he was hardly down again before--pop! it came on his forehead.
|
|
He gave it up, drew the clothes above his head, and was soon
|
|
fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
Although the next day was very stormy, Diamond forgot all about
|
|
the hole, for he was busy making a cave by the side of his mother's
|
|
fire with a broken chair, a three-legged stool, and a blanket,
|
|
and then sitting in it. His mother, however, discovered it,
|
|
and pasted a bit of brown paper over it, so that, when Diamond had
|
|
snuggled down the next night, he had no occasion to think of it.
|
|
|
|
Presently, however, he lifted his head and listened. Who could that
|
|
be talking to him? The wind was rising again, and getting very loud,
|
|
and full of rushes and whistles. He was sure some one was talking--
|
|
and very near him, too, it was. But he was not frightened,
|
|
for he had not yet learned how to be; so he sat up and hearkened.
|
|
At last the voice, which, though quite gentle, sounded a little angry,
|
|
appeared to come from the back of the bed. He crept nearer to it,
|
|
and laid his ear against the wall. Then he heard nothing but the wind,
|
|
which sounded very loud indeed. The moment, however, that he moved
|
|
his head from the wall, he heard the voice again, close to his ear.
|
|
He felt about with his hand, and came upon the piece of paper his
|
|
mother had pasted over the hole. Against this he laid his ear,
|
|
and then he heard the voice quite distinctly. There was, in fact,
|
|
a little corner of the paper loose, and through that, as from a mouth
|
|
in the wall, the voice came.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, little boy--closing up my window?"
|
|
|
|
"What window?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You stuffed hay into it three times last night. I had to blow it
|
|
out again three times."
|
|
|
|
"You can't mean this little hole! It isn't a window; it's a hole
|
|
in my bed."
|
|
|
|
"I did not say it was a window: I said it was my window."
|
|
|
|
"But it can't be a window, because windows are holes to see out of."
|
|
|
|
"Well, that's just what I made this window for."
|
|
|
|
"But you are outside: you can't want a window."
|
|
|
|
"You are quite mistaken. Windows are to see out of, you say.
|
|
Well, I'm in my house, and I want windows to see out of it."
|
|
|
|
"But you've made a window into my bed."
|
|
|
|
"Well, your mother has got three windows into my dancing room,
|
|
and you have three into my garret."
|
|
|
|
"But I heard father say, when my mother wanted him to make a window
|
|
through the wall, that it was against the law, for it would look
|
|
into Mr. Dyves's garden."
|
|
|
|
The voice laughed.
|
|
|
|
"The law would have some trouble to catch me!" it said.
|
|
|
|
"But if it's not right, you know," said Diamond, "that's no matter.
|
|
You shouldn't do it."
|
|
|
|
"I am so tall I am above that law," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"You must have a tall house, then," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; a tall house: the clouds are inside it."
|
|
|
|
"Dear me!" said Diamond, and thought a minute. "I think, then,
|
|
you can hardly expect me to keep a window in my bed for you.
|
|
Why don't you make a window into Mr. Dyves's bed?"
|
|
|
|
"Nobody makes a window into an ash-pit," said the voice, rather sadly.
|
|
"I like to see nice things out of my windows."
|
|
|
|
"But he must have a nicer bed than I have, though mine is very nice--
|
|
so nice that I couldn't wish a better."
|
|
|
|
"It's not the bed I care about: it's what is in it.--But you
|
|
just open that window."
|
|
|
|
"Well, mother says I shouldn't be disobliging; but it's rather hard.
|
|
You see the north wind will blow right in my face if I do."
|
|
|
|
"I am the North Wind."
|
|
|
|
"O-o-oh!" said Diamond, thoughtfully. "Then will you promise
|
|
not to blow on my face if I open your window?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't promise that."
|
|
|
|
"But you'll give me the toothache. Mother's got it already."
|
|
|
|
"But what's to become of me without a window?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm sure I don't know. All I say is, it will be worse for me
|
|
than for you."
|
|
|
|
"No; it will not. You shall not be the worse for it--I promise you that.
|
|
You will be much the better for it. Just you believe what I say,
|
|
and do as I tell you."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I can pull the clothes over my head," said Diamond,
|
|
and feeling with his little sharp nails, he got hold of the open
|
|
edge of the paper and tore it off at once.
|
|
|
|
In came a long whistling spear of cold, and struck his little
|
|
naked chest. He scrambled and tumbled in under the bedclothes,
|
|
and covered himself up: there was no paper now between him and the voice,
|
|
and he felt a little--not frightened exactly--I told you he had not
|
|
learned that yet--but rather queer; for what a strange person this
|
|
North Wind must be that lived in the great house--"called Out-of-Doors,
|
|
I suppose," thought Diamond--and made windows into people's beds!
|
|
But the voice began again; and he could hear it quite plainly,
|
|
even with his head under the bed-clothes. It was a still more gentle
|
|
voice now, although six times as large and loud as it had been,
|
|
and he thought it sounded a little like his mother's.
|
|
|
|
"What is your name, little boy?" it asked.
|
|
|
|
"Diamond," answered Diamond, under the bed-clothes.
|
|
|
|
"What a funny name!"
|
|
|
|
"It's a very nice name," returned its owner.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I do," retorted Diamond, a little rudely.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know to whom you are speaking!"
|
|
|
|
"No," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
And indeed he did not. For to know a person's name is not always
|
|
to know the person's self.
|
|
|
|
"Then I must not be angry with you.--You had better look and see, though."
|
|
|
|
"Diamond is a very pretty name," persisted the boy, vexed that it
|
|
should not give satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
"Diamond is a useless thing rather," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"That's not true. Diamond is very nice--as big as two--and so
|
|
quiet all night! And doesn't he make a jolly row in the morning,
|
|
getting upon his four great legs! It's like thunder."
|
|
|
|
"You don't seem to know what a diamond is."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, don't I just! Diamond is a great and good horse;
|
|
and he sleeps right under me. He is old Diamond, and I am
|
|
young Diamond; or, if you like it better, for you're very particular,
|
|
Mr. North Wind, he's big Diamond, and I'm little Diamond;
|
|
and I don't know which of us my father likes best."
|
|
|
|
A beautiful laugh, large but very soft and musical, sounded somewhere
|
|
beside him, but Diamond kept his head under the clothes.
|
|
|
|
"I'm not Mr. North Wind," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"You told me that you were the North Wind," insisted Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I did not say Mister North Wind," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, I do; for mother tells me I ought to be polite."
|
|
|
|
"Then let me tell you I don't think it at all polite of you to say
|
|
Mister to me."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I didn't know better. I'm very sorry."
|
|
|
|
"But you ought to know better."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that."
|
|
|
|
"I do. You can't say it's polite to lie there talking--with your
|
|
head under the bed-clothes, and never look up to see what kind
|
|
of person you are talking to.--I want you to come out with me."
|
|
|
|
"I want to go to sleep," said Diamond, very nearly crying, for he
|
|
did not like to be scolded, even when he deserved it.
|
|
|
|
"You shall sleep all the better to-morrow night."
|
|
|
|
"Besides," said Diamond, "you are out in Mr. Dyves's garden,
|
|
and I can't get there. I can only get into our own yard."
|
|
|
|
"Will you take your head out of the bed-clothes?" said the voice,
|
|
just a little angrily.
|
|
|
|
"No!" answered Diamond, half peevish, half frightened.
|
|
|
|
The instant he said the word, a tremendous blast of wind crashed
|
|
in a board of the wall, and swept the clothes off Diamond.
|
|
He started up in terror. Leaning over him was the large, beautiful,
|
|
pale face of a woman. Her dark eyes looked a little angry,
|
|
for they had just begun to flash; but a quivering in her sweet
|
|
upper lip made her look as if she were going to cry. What was
|
|
the most strange was that away from her head streamed out her black
|
|
hair in every direction, so that the darkness in the hay-loft
|
|
looked as if it were made of her, hair but as Diamond gazed at her
|
|
in speechless amazement, mingled with confidence--for the boy was
|
|
entranced with her mighty beauty--her hair began to gather itself
|
|
out of the darkness, and fell down all about her again, till her
|
|
face looked out of the midst of it like a moon out of a cloud.
|
|
From her eyes came all the light by which Diamond saw her face and her,
|
|
hair; and that was all he did see of her yet. The wind was over and gone.
|
|
|
|
"Will you go with me now, you little Diamond? I am sorry I was
|
|
forced to be so rough with you," said the lady.
|
|
|
|
"I will; yes, I will," answered Diamond, holding out both his arms.
|
|
"But," he added, dropping them, "how shall I get my clothes?
|
|
They are in mother's room, and the door is locked."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, never mind your clothes. You will not be cold. I shall take
|
|
care of that. Nobody is cold with the north wind."
|
|
|
|
"I thought everybody was," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"That is a great mistake. Most people make it, however. They are
|
|
cold because they are not with the north wind, but without it."
|
|
|
|
If Diamond had been a little older, and had supposed himself
|
|
a good deal wiser, he would have thought the lady was joking.
|
|
But he was not older, and did not fancy himself wiser, and therefore
|
|
understood her well enough. Again he stretched out his arms.
|
|
The lady's face drew back a little.
|
|
|
|
"Follow me, Diamond," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said Diamond, only a little ruefully.
|
|
|
|
"You're not afraid?" said the North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am; but mother never would let me go without shoes:
|
|
she never said anything about clothes, so I dare say she wouldn't
|
|
mind that."
|
|
|
|
"I know your mother very well," said the lady. "She is a good woman.
|
|
I have visited her often. I was with her when you were born.
|
|
I saw her laugh and cry both at once. I love your mother, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"How was it you did not know my name, then, ma'am? Please am I
|
|
to say ma'am to you, ma'am?"
|
|
|
|
"One question at a time, dear boy. I knew your name quite well,
|
|
but I wanted to hear what you would say for it. Don't you remember
|
|
that day when the man was finding fault with your name--how I blew
|
|
the window in?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes," answered Diamond, eagerly. "Our window opens like a door,
|
|
right over the coach-house door. And the wind--you, ma'am--came in,
|
|
and blew the Bible out of the man's hands, and the leaves went
|
|
all flutter, flutter on the floor, and my mother picked it up
|
|
and gave it back to him open, and there----"
|
|
|
|
"Was your name in the Bible--the sixth stone in the high
|
|
priest's breastplate."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!--a stone, was it?" said Diamond. "I thought it had been a horse--
|
|
I did."
|
|
|
|
"Never mind. A horse is better than a stone any day. Well, you see,
|
|
I know all about you and your mother."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I will go with you."
|
|
|
|
"Now for the next question: you're not to call me ma'am. You must
|
|
call me just my own name--respectfully, you know--just North Wind."
|
|
|
|
"Well, please, North Wind, you are so beautiful, I am quite ready
|
|
to go with you."
|
|
|
|
"You must not be ready to go with everything beautiful all
|
|
at once, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"But what's beautiful can't be bad. You're not bad, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I'm not bad. But sometimes beautiful things grow bad by doing bad,
|
|
and it takes some time for their badness to spoil their beauty.
|
|
So little boys may be mistaken if they go after things because they
|
|
are beautiful."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I will go with you because you are beautiful and good, too."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, but there's another thing, Diamond:--What if I should look
|
|
ugly without being bad--look ugly myself because I am making ugly
|
|
things beautiful?--What then?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't quite understand you, North Wind. You tell me what then."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I will tell you. If you see me with my face all black,
|
|
don't be frightened. If you see me flapping wings like a bat's, as big
|
|
as the whole sky, don't be frightened. If you hear me raging ten times
|
|
worse than Mrs. Bill, the blacksmith's wife--even if you see me looking
|
|
in at people's windows like Mrs. Eve Dropper, the gardener's wife--
|
|
you must believe that I am doing my work. Nay, Diamond, if I change
|
|
into a serpent or a tiger, you must not let go your hold of me,
|
|
for my hand will never change in yours if you keep a good hold.
|
|
If you keep a hold, you will know who I am all the time, even when
|
|
you look at me and can't see me the least like the North Wind.
|
|
I may look something very awful. Do you understand?"
|
|
|
|
"Quite well," said little Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Come along, then," said North Wind, and disappeared behind
|
|
the mountain of hay.
|
|
|
|
Diamond crept out of bed and followed her.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II
|
|
|
|
THE LAWN
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHEN Diamond got round the corner of the hay, for a moment he hesitated.
|
|
The stair by which he would naturally have gone down to the door
|
|
was at the other side of the loft, and looked very black indeed;
|
|
for it was full of North Wind's hair, as she descended before him.
|
|
And just beside him was the ladder going straight down into the stable,
|
|
up which his father always came to fetch the hay for Diamond's dinner.
|
|
Through the opening in the floor the faint gleam of the-stable lantern
|
|
was enticing, and Diamond thought he would run down that way.
|
|
|
|
The stair went close past the loose-box in which Diamond the horse lived.
|
|
When Diamond the boy was half-way down, he remembered that it
|
|
was of no use to go this way, for the stable-door was locked.
|
|
But at the same moment there was horse Diamond's great head
|
|
poked out of his box on to the ladder, for he knew boy Diamond
|
|
although he was in his night-gown, and wanted him to pull his
|
|
ears for him. This Diamond did very gently for a minute or so,
|
|
and patted and stroked his neck too, and kissed the big horse,
|
|
and had begun to take the bits of straw and hay out of his mane,
|
|
when all at once he recollected that the Lady North Wind was waiting
|
|
for him in the yard.
|
|
|
|
"Good night, Diamond," he said, and darted up the ladder,
|
|
across the loft, and down the stair to the door. But when he
|
|
got out into the yard, there was no lady.
|
|
|
|
Now it is always a dreadful thing to think there is somebody and
|
|
find nobody. Children in particular have not made up their minds to it;
|
|
they generally cry at nobody, especially when they wake up at night.
|
|
But it was an especial disappointment to Diamond, for his little heart
|
|
had been beating with joy: the face of the North Wind was so grand!
|
|
To have a lady like that for a friend--with such long hair, too!
|
|
Why, it was longer than twenty Diamonds' tails! She was gone.
|
|
And there he stood, with his bare feet on the stones of the paved yard.
|
|
|
|
It was a clear night overhead, and the stars were shining.
|
|
Orion in particular was making the most of his bright belt
|
|
and golden sword. But the moon was only a poor thin crescent.
|
|
There was just one great, jagged, black and gray cloud in the sky,
|
|
with a steep side to it like a precipice; and the moon was against
|
|
this side, and looked as if she had tumbled off the top of the
|
|
cloud-hill, and broken herself in rolling down the precipice.
|
|
She did not seem comfortable, for she was looking down into the
|
|
deep pit waiting for her. At least that was what Diamond thought
|
|
as he stood for a moment staring at her. But he was quite wrong,
|
|
for the moon was not afraid, and there was no pit she was going
|
|
down into, for there were no sides to it, and a pit without sides
|
|
to it is not a pit at all. Diamond, however, had not been out so late
|
|
before in all his life, and things looked so strange about him!--
|
|
just as if he had got into Fairyland, of which he knew quite as much
|
|
as anybody; for his mother had no money to buy books to set him
|
|
wrong on the subject. I have seen this world--only sometimes,
|
|
just now and then, you know--look as strange as ever I saw Fairyland.
|
|
But I confess that I have not yet seen Fairyland at its best.
|
|
I am always going to see it so some time. But if you had been out
|
|
in the face and not at the back of the North Wind, on a cold rather
|
|
frosty night, and in your night-gown, you would have felt it all
|
|
quite as strange as Diamond did. He cried a little, just a little,
|
|
he was so disappointed to lose the lady: of course, you, little man,
|
|
wouldn't have done that! But for my part, I don't mind people
|
|
crying so much as I mind what they cry about, and how they cry--
|
|
whether they cry quietly like ladies and gentlemen, or go shrieking
|
|
like vulgar emperors, or ill-natured cooks; for all emperors are
|
|
not gentlemen, and all cooks are not ladies--nor all queens and
|
|
princesses for that matter, either.
|
|
|
|
But it can't be denied that a little gentle crying does one good.
|
|
It did Diamond good; for as soon as it was over he was a brave
|
|
boy again.
|
|
|
|
"She shan't say it was my fault, anyhow!" said Diamond. "I daresay
|
|
she is hiding somewhere to see what I will do. I will look for her."
|
|
|
|
So he went round the end of the stable towards the kitchen-garden.
|
|
But the moment he was clear of the shelter of the stable, sharp as
|
|
a knife came the wind against his little chest and his bare legs.
|
|
Still he would look in the kitchen-garden, and went on.
|
|
But when he got round the weeping-ash that stood in the corner,
|
|
the wind blew much stronger, and it grew stronger and stronger
|
|
till he could hardly fight against it. And it was so cold!
|
|
All the flashy spikes of the stars seemed to have got somehow
|
|
into the wind. Then he thought of what the lady had said about
|
|
people being cold because they were not with the North Wind.
|
|
How it was that he should have guessed what she meant at that very
|
|
moment I cannot tell, but I have observed that the most wonderful
|
|
thing in the world is how people come to understand anything.
|
|
He turned his back to the wind, and trotted again towards the yard;
|
|
whereupon, strange to say, it blew so much more gently against his
|
|
calves than it had blown against his shins that he began to feel
|
|
almost warm by contrast.
|
|
|
|
You must not think it was cowardly of Diamond to turn his back
|
|
to the wind: he did so only because he thought Lady North Wind
|
|
had said something like telling him to do so. If she had said
|
|
to him that he must hold his face to it, Diamond would have held
|
|
his face to it. But the most foolish thing is to fight for no good,
|
|
and to please nobody.
|
|
|
|
Well, it was just as if the wind was pushing Diamond along.
|
|
If he turned round, it grew very sharp on his legs especially,
|
|
and so he thought the wind might really be Lady North Wind, though he
|
|
could not see her, and he had better let her blow him wherever
|
|
she pleased. So she blew and blew, and he went and went, until he
|
|
found himself standing at a door in a wall, which door led from the
|
|
yard into a little belt of shrubbery, flanking Mr. Coleman's house.
|
|
Mr. Coleman was his father's master, and the owner of Diamond.
|
|
He opened the door, and went through the shrubbery, and out
|
|
into the middle of the lawn, still hoping to find North Wind.
|
|
The soft grass was very pleasant to his bare feet, and felt warm
|
|
after the stones of the yard; but the lady was nowhere to be seen.
|
|
Then he began to think that after all he must have done wrong,
|
|
and she was offended with him for not following close after her,
|
|
but staying to talk to the horse, which certainly was neither wise
|
|
nor polite.
|
|
|
|
There he stood in the middle of the lawn, the wind blowing his
|
|
night-gown till it flapped like a loose sail. The stars were very
|
|
shiny over his head; but they did not give light enough to show that
|
|
the grass was green; and Diamond stood alone in the strange night,
|
|
which looked half solid all about him. He began to wonder whether
|
|
he was in a dream or not. It was important to determine this;
|
|
"for," thought Diamond, "if I am in a dream, I am safe in my bed,
|
|
and I needn't cry. But if I'm not in a dream, I'm out here, and perhaps
|
|
I had better cry, or, at least, I'm not sure whether I can help it."
|
|
He came to the conclusion, however, that, whether he was in a dream
|
|
or not, there could be no harm in not crying for a little while longer:
|
|
he could begin whenever he liked.
|
|
|
|
The back of Mr. Coleman's house was to the lawn, and one of the
|
|
drawing-room windows looked out upon it. The ladies had not
|
|
gone to bed; for the light was still shining in that window.
|
|
But they had no idea that a little boy was standing on the lawn
|
|
in his night-gown, or they would have run out in a moment. And as
|
|
long as he saw that light, Diamond could not feel quite lonely.
|
|
He stood staring, not at the great warrior Orion in the sky,
|
|
nor yet at the disconsolate, neglected moon going down in the west,
|
|
but at the drawing-room window with the light shining through its
|
|
green curtains. He had been in that room once or twice that he could
|
|
remember at Christmas times; for the Colemans were kind people,
|
|
though they did not care much about children.
|
|
|
|
All at once the light went nearly out: he could only see a glimmer
|
|
of the shape of the window. Then, indeed, he felt that he was
|
|
left alone. It was so dreadful to be out in the night after
|
|
everybody was gone to bed! That was more than he could bear.
|
|
He burst out crying in good earnest, beginning with a wail
|
|
like that of the wind when it is waking up.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps you think this was very foolish; for could he not go home
|
|
to his own bed again when he liked? Yes; but it looked dreadful
|
|
to him to creep up that stair again and lie down in his bed again,
|
|
and know that North Wind's window was open beside him, and she gone,
|
|
and he might never see her again. He would be just as lonely there
|
|
as here. Nay, it would be much worse if he had to think that the
|
|
window was nothing but a hole in the wall.
|
|
|
|
At the very moment when he burst out crying, the old nurse who had
|
|
grown to be one of the family, for she had not gone away when Miss
|
|
Coleman did not want any more nursing, came to the back door,
|
|
which was of glass, to close the shutters. She thought she heard
|
|
a cry, and, peering out with a hand on each side of her eyes
|
|
like Diamond's blinkers, she saw something white on the lawn.
|
|
Too old and too wise to be frightened, she opened the door,
|
|
and went straight towards the white thing to see what it was.
|
|
And when Diamond saw her coming he was not frightened either,
|
|
though Mrs. Crump was a little cross sometimes; for there is
|
|
a good kind of crossness that is only disagreeable, and there is
|
|
a bad kind of crossness that is very nasty indeed. So she came
|
|
up with her neck stretched out, and her head at the end of it,
|
|
and her eyes foremost of all, like a snail's, peering into the night
|
|
to see what it could be that went on glimmering white before her.
|
|
When she did see, she made a great exclamation, and threw up
|
|
her hands. Then without a word, for she thought Diamond was walking
|
|
in his sleep, she caught hold of him, and led him towards the house.
|
|
He made no objection, for he was just in the mood to be grateful
|
|
for notice of any sort, and Mrs. Crump led him straight into the
|
|
drawing-room.
|
|
|
|
Now, from the neglect of the new housemaid, the fire in Miss
|
|
Coleman's bedroom had gone out, and her mother had told her to brush
|
|
her hair by the drawing-room fire--a disorderly proceeding which
|
|
a mother's wish could justify. The young lady was very lovely,
|
|
though not nearly so beautiful as North Wind; and her hair was
|
|
extremely long, for it came down to her knees--though that was
|
|
nothing at all to North Wind's hair. Yet when she looked round,
|
|
with her hair all about her, as Diamond entered, he thought
|
|
for one moment that it was North Wind, and, pulling his hand from
|
|
Mrs. Crump's, he stretched out his arms and ran towards Miss Coleman.
|
|
She was so pleased that she threw down her brush, and almost knelt
|
|
on the floor to receive him in her arms. He saw the next moment
|
|
that she was not Lady North Wind, but she looked so like her he could
|
|
not help running into her arms and bursting into tears afresh.
|
|
Mrs. Crump said the poor child had walked out in his sleep, and Diamond
|
|
thought she ought to know, and did not contradict her for anything
|
|
he knew, it might be so indeed. He let them talk on about him,
|
|
and said nothing; and when, after their astonishment was over,
|
|
and Miss Coleman had given him a sponge-cake, it was decreed
|
|
that Mrs. Crump should take him to his mother, he was quite satisfied.
|
|
|
|
His mother had to get out of bed to open the door when Mrs. Crump
|
|
knocked. She was indeed surprised to see her, boy; and having
|
|
taken him in her arms and carried him to his bed, returned and
|
|
had a long confabulation with Mrs. Crump, for they were still
|
|
talking when Diamond fell fast asleep, and could hear them no longer.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III
|
|
|
|
OLD DIAMOND
|
|
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND woke very early in the morning, and thought what a curious
|
|
dream he had had. But the memory grew brighter and brighter
|
|
in his head, until it did not look altogether like a dream, and he
|
|
began to doubt whether he had not really been abroad in the wind
|
|
last night. He came to the conclusion that, if he had really been
|
|
brought home to his mother by Mrs. Crump, she would say something
|
|
to him about it, and that would settle the matter. Then he got
|
|
up and dressed himself, but, finding that his father and mother
|
|
were not yet stirring, he went down the ladder to the stable.
|
|
There he found that even old Diamond was not awake yet, for he,
|
|
as well as young Diamond, always got up the moment he woke, and now
|
|
he was lying as flat as a horse could lie upon his nice trim bed
|
|
of straw.
|
|
|
|
"I'll give old Diamond a surprise," thought the, boy; and creeping
|
|
up very softly, before the horse knew, he was astride of his back.
|
|
Then it was young Diamond's turn to have more of a surprise than he
|
|
had expected; for as with an earthquake, with a rumbling and a rocking
|
|
hither and thither, a sprawling of legs and heaving as of many backs,
|
|
young Diamond found himself hoisted up in the air, with both hands
|
|
twisted in the horse's mane. The next instant old Diamond lashed
|
|
out with both his hind legs, and giving one cry of terror young
|
|
Diamond found himself lying on his neck, with his arms as far round
|
|
it as they would go. But then the horse stood as still as a stone,
|
|
except that he lifted his head gently up to let the boy slip down
|
|
to his back. For when he heard young Diamond's cry he knew that
|
|
there was nothing to kick about; for young Diamond was a good boy,
|
|
and old Diamond was a good horse, and the one was all right on the
|
|
back of the other.
|
|
|
|
As soon as Diamond had got himself comfortable on the saddle place,
|
|
the horse began pulling at the hay, and the boy began thinking.
|
|
He had never mounted Diamond himself before, and he had never got
|
|
off him without being lifted down. So he sat, while the horse ate,
|
|
wondering how he was to reach the ground.
|
|
|
|
But while he meditated, his mother woke, and her first thought
|
|
was to see her boy. She had visited him twice during the night,
|
|
and found him sleeping quietly. Now his bed was empty, and she
|
|
was frightened.
|
|
|
|
"Diamond! Diamond! Where are you, Diamond?" she called out.
|
|
|
|
Diamond turned his head where he sat like a knight on his steed
|
|
in enchanted stall, and cried aloud,--
|
|
|
|
"Here, mother!"
|
|
|
|
"Where, Diamond?" she returned.
|
|
|
|
"Here, mother, on Diamond's back."
|
|
|
|
She came running to the ladder, and peeping down, saw him aloft
|
|
on the great horse.
|
|
|
|
"Come down, Diamond," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I can't," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"How did you get up?" asked his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Quite easily," answered he; "but when I got up, Diamond would get
|
|
up too, and so here I am."
|
|
|
|
His mother thought he had been walking in his sleep again, and hurried
|
|
down the ladder. She did not much like going up to the horse,
|
|
for she had not been used to horses; but she would have gone
|
|
into a lion's den, not to say a horse's stall, to help her boy.
|
|
So she went and lifted him off Diamond's back, and felt braver
|
|
all her life after. She carried him in her arms up to her room;
|
|
but, afraid of frightening him at his own sleep-walking, as she
|
|
supposed it, said nothing about last night. Before the next day
|
|
was over, Diamond had almost concluded the whole adventure a dream.
|
|
|
|
For a week his mother watched him very carefully--going into
|
|
the loft several times a night--as often, in fact, as she woke.
|
|
Every time she found him fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
All that week it was hard weather. The grass showed white in the morning
|
|
with the hoar-frost which clung like tiny comfits to every blade.
|
|
And as Diamond's shoes were not good, and his mother had not quite
|
|
saved up enough money to get him the new pair she so much wanted
|
|
for him, she would not let him run out. He played all his games
|
|
over and over indoors, especially that of driving two chairs
|
|
harnessed to the baby's cradle; and if they did not go very fast,
|
|
they went as fast as could be expected of the best chairs in the world,
|
|
although one of them had only three legs, and the other only half
|
|
a back.
|
|
|
|
At length his mother brought home his new shoes, and no sooner
|
|
did she find they fitted him than she told him he might run
|
|
out in the yard and amuse himself for an hour.
|
|
|
|
The sun was going down when he flew from the door like a bird from
|
|
its cage. All the world was new to him. A great fire of sunset
|
|
burned on the top of the gate that led from the stables to the house;
|
|
above the fire in the sky lay a large lake of green light, above that
|
|
a golden cloud, and over that the blue of the wintry heavens.
|
|
And Diamond thought that, next to his own home, he had never seen
|
|
any place he would like so much to live in as that sky. For it
|
|
is not fine things that make home a nice place, but your mother
|
|
and your father.
|
|
|
|
As he was looking at the lovely colours, the gates were thrown open,
|
|
and there was old Diamond and his friend in the carriage, dancing with
|
|
impatience to get at their stalls and their oats. And in they came.
|
|
Diamond was not in the least afraid of his father driving over him,
|
|
but, careful not to spoil the grand show he made with his fine
|
|
horses and his multitudinous cape, with a red edge to every fold,
|
|
he slipped out of the way and let him dash right on to the stables.
|
|
To be quite safe he had to step into the recess of the door that led
|
|
from the yard to the shrubbery.
|
|
|
|
As he stood there he remembered how the wind had driven him
|
|
to this same spot on the night of his dream. And once more he
|
|
was almost sure that it was no dream. At all events, he would go
|
|
in and see whether things looked at all now as they did then.
|
|
He opened the door, and passed through the little belt of shrubbery.
|
|
Not a flower was to be seen in the beds on the lawn. Even the
|
|
brave old chrysanthemums and Christmas roses had passed away
|
|
before the frost. What? Yes! There was one! He ran and knelt
|
|
down to look at it.
|
|
|
|
It was a primrose--a dwarfish thing, but perfect in shape--
|
|
a baby-wonder. As he stooped his face to see it close, a little
|
|
wind began to blow, and two or three long leaves that stood up
|
|
behind the flower shook and waved and quivered, but the primrose lay
|
|
still in the green hollow, looking up at the sky, and not seeming
|
|
to know that the wind was blowing at all. It was just a one eye
|
|
that the dull black wintry earth had opened to look at the sky with.
|
|
All at once Diamond thought it was saying its prayers, and he
|
|
ought not to be staring at it so. He ran to the stable to see his
|
|
father make Diamond's bed. Then his father took him in his arms,
|
|
carried him up the ladder, and set him down at the table where they
|
|
were going to have their tea.
|
|
|
|
"Miss is very poorly," said Diamond's father. "Mis'ess has been
|
|
to the doctor with her to-day, and she looked very glum when she came
|
|
out again. I was a-watching of them to see what doctor had said."
|
|
|
|
"And didn't Miss look glum too?" asked his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Not half as glum as Mis'ess," returned the coachman. "You see--"
|
|
|
|
But he lowered his voice, and Diamond could not make out more than
|
|
a word here and there. For Diamond's father was not only one of
|
|
the finest of coachmen to look at, and one of the best of drivers,
|
|
but one of the most discreet of servants as well. Therefore he did not
|
|
talk about family affairs to any one but his wife, whom he had proved
|
|
better than himself long ago, and was careful that even Diamond should
|
|
hear nothing he could repeat again concerning master and his family.
|
|
|
|
It was bed-time soon, and Diamond went to bed and fell fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
He awoke all at once, in the dark.
|
|
|
|
"Open the window, Diamond," said a voice.
|
|
|
|
Now Diamond's mother had once more pasted up North Wind's window.
|
|
|
|
"Are you North Wind?" said Diamond: "I don't hear you blowing."
|
|
|
|
"No; but you hear me talking. Open the window, for I haven't
|
|
overmuch time."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," returned Diamond. "But, please, North Wind, where's the use?
|
|
You left me all alone last time."
|
|
|
|
He had got up on his knees, and was busy with his nails once
|
|
more at the paper over the hole in the wall. For now that North
|
|
Wind spoke again, he remembered all that had taken place before
|
|
as distinctly as if it had happened only last night.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but that was your fault," returned North Wind. "I had work
|
|
to do; and, besides, a gentleman should never keep a lady waiting."
|
|
|
|
"But I'm not a gentleman," said Diamond, scratching away at the paper.
|
|
|
|
"I hope you won't say so ten years after this."
|
|
|
|
"I'm going to be a coachman, and a coachman is not a gentleman,"
|
|
persisted Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"We call your father a gentleman in our house," said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"He doesn't call himself one," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"That's of no consequence: every man ought to be a gentleman,
|
|
and your father is one."
|
|
|
|
Diamond was so pleased to hear this that he scratched at the paper
|
|
like ten mice, and getting hold of the edge of it, tore it off.
|
|
The next instant a young girl glided across the bed, and stood upon
|
|
the floor.
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear!" said Diamond, quite dismayed; "I didn't know--
|
|
who are you, please?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm North Wind."
|
|
|
|
"Are you really?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Make haste."
|
|
|
|
"But you're no bigger than me."
|
|
|
|
"Do you think I care about how big or how little I am? Didn't you
|
|
see me this evening? I was less then."
|
|
|
|
"No. Where was you?"
|
|
|
|
"Behind the leaves of the primrose. Didn't you see them blowing?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Make haste, then, if you want to go with me."
|
|
|
|
"But you are not big enough to take care of me. I think you are
|
|
only Miss North Wind."
|
|
|
|
"I am big enough to show you the way, anyhow. But if you
|
|
won't come, why, you must stay."
|
|
|
|
"I must dress myself. I didn't mind with a grown lady, but I
|
|
couldn't go with a little girl in my night-gown."
|
|
|
|
"Very well. I'm not in such a hurry as I was the other night.
|
|
Dress as fast as you can, and I'll go and shake the primrose leaves
|
|
till you come."
|
|
|
|
"Don't hurt it," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
North Wind broke out in a little laugh like the breaking
|
|
of silver bubbles, and was gone in a moment. Diamond saw--
|
|
for it was a starlit night, and the mass of hay was at a low
|
|
ebb now--the gleam of something vanishing down the stair, and,
|
|
springing out of bed, dressed himself as fast as ever he could.
|
|
Then he crept out into the yard, through the door in the wall,
|
|
and away to the primrose. Behind it stood North Wind,
|
|
leaning over it, and looking at the flower as if she had been its mother.
|
|
|
|
"Come along," she said, jumping up and holding out her hand.
|
|
|
|
Diamond took her hand. It was cold, but so pleasant and full
|
|
of life, it was better than warm. She led him across the garden.
|
|
With one bound she was on the top of the wall. Diamond was left at
|
|
the foot.
|
|
|
|
"Stop, stop!" he cried. "Please, I can't jump like that."
|
|
|
|
"You don't try" said North Wind, who from the top looked down a foot
|
|
taller than before.
|
|
|
|
"Give me your hand again, and I will, try" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
She reached down, Diamond laid hold of her hand, gave a great spring,
|
|
and stood beside her.
|
|
|
|
"This is nice!" he said.
|
|
|
|
Another bound, and they stood in the road by the river.
|
|
It was full tide, and the stars were shining clear in its depths,
|
|
for it lay still, waiting for the turn to run down again to the sea.
|
|
They walked along its side. But they had not walked far before its
|
|
surface was covered with ripples, and the stars had vanished from
|
|
its bosom.
|
|
|
|
And North Wind was now tall as a full-grown girl. Her hair was flying
|
|
about her head, and the wind was blowing a breeze down the river.
|
|
But she turned aside and went up a narrow lane, and as she went her
|
|
hair fell down around her.
|
|
|
|
"I have some rather disagreeable work to do to-night," she said,
|
|
"before I get out to sea, and I must set about it at once.
|
|
The disagreeable work must be looked after first."
|
|
|
|
So saying, she laid hold of Diamond and began to run, gliding along
|
|
faster and faster. Diamond kept up with her as well as he could.
|
|
She made many turnings and windings, apparently because it was not
|
|
quite easy to get him over walls and houses. Once they ran through
|
|
a hall where they found back and front doors open. At the foot of
|
|
the stair North Wind stood still, and Diamond, hearing a great growl,
|
|
started in terror, and there, instead of North Wind, was a huge wolf
|
|
by his side. He let go his hold in dismay, and the wolf bounded
|
|
up the stair. The windows of the house rattled and shook as if
|
|
guns were firing, and the sound of a great fall came from above.
|
|
Diamond stood with white face staring up at the landing.
|
|
|
|
"Surely," he thought, "North Wind can't be eating one of the children!"
|
|
Coming to himself all at once, he rushed after her with his little
|
|
fist clenched. There were ladies in long trains going up and down
|
|
the stairs, and gentlemen in white neckties attending on them,
|
|
who stared at him, but none of them were of the people of the house,
|
|
and they said nothing. Before he reached the head of the stair,
|
|
however, North Wind met him, took him by the hand, and hurried
|
|
down and out of the house.
|
|
|
|
"I hope you haven't eaten a baby, North Wind!" said Diamond,
|
|
very solemnly.
|
|
|
|
North Wind laughed merrily, and went tripping on faster. Her grassy
|
|
robe swept and swirled about her steps, and wherever it passed
|
|
over withered leaves, they went fleeing and whirling in spirals,
|
|
and running on their edges like wheels, all about her feet.
|
|
|
|
"No," she said at last, "I did not eat a baby. You would not have had
|
|
to ask that foolish question if you had not let go your hold of me.
|
|
You would have seen how I served a nurse that was calling a child
|
|
bad names, and telling her she was wicked. She had been drinking.
|
|
I saw an ugly gin bottle in a cupboard."
|
|
|
|
"And you frightened her?" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I believe so!" answered North Wind laughing merrily. "I flew
|
|
at her throat, and she tumbled over on the floor with such a crash
|
|
that they ran in. She'll be turned away to-morrow--and quite time,
|
|
if they knew as much as I do."
|
|
|
|
"But didn't you frighten the little one?"
|
|
|
|
"She never saw me. The woman would not have seen me either if she
|
|
had not been wicked."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" said Diamond, dubiously.
|
|
|
|
"Why should you see things," returned North Wind, "that you wouldn't
|
|
understand or know what to do with? Good people see good things;
|
|
bad people, bad things."
|
|
|
|
"Then are you a bad thing?"
|
|
|
|
"No. For you see me, Diamond, dear," said the girl, and she looked
|
|
down at him, and Diamond saw the loving eyes of the great lady
|
|
beaming from the depths of her falling hair.
|
|
|
|
"I had to make myself look like a bad thing before she could see me.
|
|
If I had put on any other shape than a wolf's she would not have
|
|
seen me, for that is what is growing to be her own shape inside
|
|
of her."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean," said Diamond, "but I suppose it's
|
|
all right."
|
|
|
|
They were now climbing the slope of a grassy ascent. It was
|
|
Primrose Hill, in fact, although Diamond had never heard of it.
|
|
The moment they reached the top, North Wind stood and turned her face
|
|
towards London The stars were still shining clear and cold overhead.
|
|
There was not a cloud to be seen. The air was sharp, but Diamond did
|
|
not find it cold.
|
|
|
|
"Now," said the lady, "whatever you do, do not let my hand go.
|
|
I might have lost you the last time, only I was not in a hurry then:
|
|
now I am in a hurry."
|
|
|
|
Yet she stood still for a moment.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV
|
|
|
|
NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
AND as she stood looking towards London, Diamond saw that she
|
|
was trembling.
|
|
|
|
"Are you cold, North Wind?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"No, Diamond," she answered, looking down upon him with a smile;
|
|
"I am only getting ready to sweep one of my rooms. Those careless,
|
|
greedy, untidy children make it in such a mess."
|
|
|
|
As she spoke he could have told by her voice, if he had not seen
|
|
with his eyes, that she was growing larger and larger. Her head
|
|
went up and up towards the stars; and as she grew, still trembling
|
|
through all her body, her hair also grew--longer and longer,
|
|
and lifted itself from her head, and went out in black waves.
|
|
The next moment, however, it fell back around her, and she grew less
|
|
and less till she was only a tall woman. Then she put her hands
|
|
behind her head, and gathered some of her hair, and began weaving
|
|
and knotting it together. When she had done, she bent down her
|
|
beautiful face close to his, and said--
|
|
|
|
"Diamond, I am afraid you would not keep hold of me, and if I
|
|
were to drop you, I don't know what might happen; so I have been
|
|
making a place for you in my hair. Come."
|
|
|
|
Diamond held out his arms, for with that grand face looking at him,
|
|
he believed like a baby. She took him in her hands, threw him over
|
|
her shoulder, and said, "Get in, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
And Diamond parted her hair with his hands, crept between, and feeling
|
|
about soon found the woven nest. It was just like a pocket,
|
|
or like the shawl in which gipsy women carry their children.
|
|
North Wind put her hands to her back, felt all about the nest,
|
|
and finding it safe, said--
|
|
|
|
"Are you comfortable, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, indeed," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
The next moment he was rising in the air. North Wind grew towering
|
|
up to the place of the clouds. Her hair went streaming out from her,
|
|
till it spread like a mist over the stars. She flung herself abroad
|
|
in space.
|
|
|
|
Diamond held on by two of the twisted ropes which, parted and interwoven,
|
|
formed his shelter, for he could not help being a little afraid.
|
|
As soon as he had come to himself, he peeped through the woven meshes,
|
|
for he did not dare to look over the top of the nest. The earth
|
|
was rushing past like a river or a sea below him. Trees and water
|
|
and green grass hurried away beneath. A great roar of wild animals
|
|
rose as they rushed over the Zoological Gardens, mixed with a
|
|
chattering of monkeys and a screaming of birds; but it died away
|
|
in a moment behind them. And now there was nothing but the roofs
|
|
of houses, sweeping along like a great torrent of stones and rocks.
|
|
Chimney-pots fell, and tiles flew from the roofs; but it looked
|
|
to him as if they were left behind by the roofs and the chimneys
|
|
as they scudded away. There was a great roaring, for the wind was
|
|
dashing against London like a sea; but at North Wind's back Diamond,
|
|
of course, felt nothing of it all. He was in a perfect calm.
|
|
He could hear the sound of it, that was all.
|
|
|
|
By and by he raised himself and looked over the edge of his nest.
|
|
There were the houses rushing up and shooting away below him,
|
|
like a fierce torrent of rocks instead of water. Then he
|
|
looked up to the sky, but could see no stars; they were hidden
|
|
by the blinding masses of the lady's hair which swept between.
|
|
He began to wonder whether she would hear him if he spoke.
|
|
He would try.
|
|
|
|
"Please, North Wind," he said, "what is that noise?"
|
|
|
|
From high over his head came the voice of North Wind,
|
|
answering him, gently--
|
|
|
|
"The noise of my besom. I am the old woman that sweeps the cobwebs
|
|
from the, sky; only I'm busy with the floor now."
|
|
|
|
"What makes the houses look as if they were running away?"
|
|
|
|
"I am sweeping so fast over them."
|
|
|
|
"But, please, North Wind, I knew London was very big, but I didn't
|
|
know it was so big as this. It seems as if we should never get
|
|
away from it."
|
|
|
|
"We are going round and round, else we should have left it long ago."
|
|
|
|
"Is this the way you sweep, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I go round and round with my great besom."
|
|
|
|
"Please, would you mind going a little slower, for I want to see
|
|
the streets?"
|
|
|
|
"You won't see much now."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I have nearly swept all the people home."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! I forgot," said Diamond, and was quiet after that, for he
|
|
did not want to be troublesome.
|
|
|
|
But she dropped a little towards the roofs of the houses,
|
|
and Diamond could see down into the streets. There were very few
|
|
people about, though. The lamps flickered and flared again,
|
|
but nobody seemed to want them.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly Diamond espied a little girl coming along a street. She was
|
|
dreadfully blown by the wind, and a broom she was trailing behind her
|
|
was very troublesome. It seemed as if the wind had a spite at her--
|
|
it kept worrying her like a wild beast, and tearing at her rags.
|
|
She was so lonely there!
|
|
|
|
"Oh! please, North Wind," he cried, "won't you help that little girl?"
|
|
|
|
"No, Diamond; I mustn't leave my work."
|
|
|
|
"But why shouldn't you be kind to her?"
|
|
|
|
"I am kind to her. I am sweeping the wicked smells away."
|
|
|
|
"But you're kinder to me, dear North Wind. Why shouldn't you
|
|
be as kind to her as you are to me?"
|
|
|
|
"There are reasons, Diamond. Everybody can't be done to all the same.
|
|
Everybody is not ready for the same thing."
|
|
|
|
"But I don't see why I should be kinder used than she."
|
|
|
|
"Do you think nothing's to be done but what you can see, Diamond,
|
|
you silly! It's all right. Of course you can help her if you like.
|
|
You've got nothing particular to do at this moment; I have."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! do let me help her, then. But you won't be able to wait, perhaps?"
|
|
|
|
"No, I can't wait; you must do it yourself. And, mind, the wind
|
|
will get a hold of you, too."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you want me to help her, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Not without having some idea what will happen. If you break
|
|
down and cry, that won't be much of a help to her, and it will
|
|
make a goose of little Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"I want to go," said Diamond. "Only there's just one thing--
|
|
how am I to get home?"
|
|
|
|
"If you're anxious about that, perhaps you had better go with me.
|
|
I am bound to take you home again, if you do."
|
|
|
|
"There!" cried Diamond, who was still looking after the little girl.
|
|
"I'm sure the wind will blow her over, and perhaps kill her.
|
|
Do let me go."
|
|
|
|
They had been sweeping more slowly along the line of the street.
|
|
There was a lull in the roaring.
|
|
|
|
"Well, though I cannot promise to take you home," said North Wind,
|
|
as she sank nearer and nearer to the tops of the houses, "I can promise
|
|
you it will be all right in the end. You will get home somehow.
|
|
Have you made up your mind what to do?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; to help the little girl," said Diamond firmly.
|
|
|
|
The same moment North Wind dropt into the street and stood,
|
|
only a tall lady, but with her hair flying up over the housetops.
|
|
She put her hands to her back, took Diamond, and set him down in
|
|
the street. The same moment he was caught in the fierce coils of
|
|
the blast, and all but blown away. North Wind stepped back a step,
|
|
and at once towered in stature to the height of the houses.
|
|
A chimney-pot clashed at Diamond's feet. He turned in terror,
|
|
but it was to look for the little girl, and when he turned again
|
|
the lady had vanished, and the wind was roaring along the street
|
|
as if it had been the bed of an invisible torrent. The little girl
|
|
was scudding before the blast, her hair flying too, and behind her
|
|
she dragged her broom. Her little legs were going as fast as ever
|
|
they could to keep her from falling. Diamond crept into the shelter
|
|
of a doorway, thinking to stop her; but she passed him like a bird,
|
|
crying gently and pitifully.
|
|
|
|
"Stop! stop! little girl," shouted Diamond, starting in pursuit.
|
|
|
|
"I can't," wailed the girl, "the wind won't leave go of me."
|
|
|
|
Diamond could run faster than she, and he had no broom. In a few
|
|
moments he had caught her by the frock, but it tore in his hand,
|
|
and away went the little girl. So he had to run again, and this
|
|
time he ran so fast that he got before her, and turning round caught
|
|
her in his arms, when down they went both together, which made
|
|
the little girl laugh in the midst of her crying.
|
|
|
|
"Where are you going?" asked Diamond, rubbing the elbow that had
|
|
stuck farthest out. The arm it belonged to was twined round
|
|
a lamp-post as he stood between the little girl and the wind.
|
|
|
|
"Home," she said, gasping for breath.
|
|
|
|
"Then I will go with you," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
And then they were silent for a while, for the wind blew worse
|
|
than ever, and they had both to hold on to the lamp-post.
|
|
|
|
"Where is your crossing?" asked the girl at length.
|
|
|
|
"I don't sweep," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What do you do, then?" asked she. "You ain't big enough
|
|
for most things."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what I do do," answered he, feeling rather ashamed.
|
|
"Nothing, I suppose. My father's Mr. Coleman's coachman."
|
|
|
|
"Have you a father?" she said, staring at him as if a boy with
|
|
a father was a natural curiosity.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Haven't you?" returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No; nor mother neither. Old Sal's all I've got." And she began
|
|
to cry again.
|
|
|
|
"I wouldn't go to her if she wasn't good to me," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"But you must go somewheres."
|
|
|
|
"Move on," said the voice of a policeman behind them.
|
|
|
|
"I told you so," said the girl. "You must go somewheres.
|
|
They're always at it."
|
|
|
|
"But old Sal doesn't beat you, does she?"
|
|
|
|
"I wish she would."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?" asked Diamond, quite bewildered.
|
|
|
|
"She would if she was my mother. But she wouldn't lie abed a-cuddlin'
|
|
of her ugly old bones, and laugh to hear me crying at the door."
|
|
|
|
"You don't mean she won't let you in to-night?"
|
|
|
|
"It'll be a good chance if she does."
|
|
|
|
"Why are you out so late, then?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"My crossing's a long way off at the West End, and I had been indulgin'
|
|
in door-steps and mewses."
|
|
|
|
"We'd better have a try anyhow," said Diamond. "Come along."
|
|
|
|
As he spoke Diamond thought he caught a glimpse of North Wind turning
|
|
a corner in front of them; and when they turned the corner too,
|
|
they found it quiet there, but he saw nothing of the lady.
|
|
|
|
"Now you lead me," he said, taking her hand, "and I'll take care
|
|
of you."
|
|
|
|
The girl withdrew her hand, but only to dry her eyes with her frock,
|
|
for the other had enough to do with her broom. She put it in
|
|
his again, and led him, turning after turning, until they stopped
|
|
at a cellar-door in a very dirty lane. There she knocked.
|
|
|
|
"I shouldn't like to live here," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes, you would, if you had nowhere else to go to,"
|
|
answered the girl. "I only wish we may get in."
|
|
|
|
"I don't want to go in," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Where do you mean to go, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Home to my home."
|
|
|
|
"Where's that?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't exactly know."
|
|
|
|
"Then you're worse off than I am."
|
|
|
|
"Oh no, for North Wind--" began Diamond, and stopped, he hardly
|
|
knew why.
|
|
|
|
"What?" said the girl, as she held her ear to the door listening.
|
|
|
|
But Diamond did not reply. Neither did old Sal.
|
|
|
|
"I told you so," said the girl. "She is wide awake hearkening.
|
|
But we don't get in."
|
|
|
|
"What will you do, then?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Move on," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"Where?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, anywheres. Bless you, I'm used to it."
|
|
|
|
"Hadn't you better come home with me, then?"
|
|
|
|
"That's a good joke, when you don't know where it is. Come on."
|
|
|
|
"But where?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, nowheres in particular. Come on."
|
|
|
|
Diamond obeyed. The wind had now fallen considerably. They wandered
|
|
on and on, turning in this direction and that, without any reason
|
|
for one way more than another, until they had got out of the thick
|
|
of the houses into a waste kind of place. By this time they were both
|
|
very tired. Diamond felt a good deal inclined to cry, and thought
|
|
he had been very silly to get down from the back of North Wind;
|
|
not that he would have minded it if he had done the girl any good;
|
|
but he thought he had been of no use to her. He was mistaken there,
|
|
for she was far happier for having Diamond with her than if she had
|
|
been wandering about alone. She did not seem so tired as he was.
|
|
|
|
"Do let us rest a bit," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Let's see," she answered. "There's something like a railway there.
|
|
Perhaps there's an open arch."
|
|
|
|
They went towards it and found one, and, better still, there was
|
|
an empty barrel lying under the arch.
|
|
|
|
"Hallo! here we are!" said the girl. "A barrel's the jolliest
|
|
bed going--on the tramp, I mean. We'll have forty winks, and then
|
|
go on again."
|
|
|
|
She crept in, and Diamond crept in beside her. They put their arms
|
|
round each other, and when he began to grow warm, Diamond's courage
|
|
began to come back.
|
|
|
|
"This is jolly!" he said. "I'm so glad!"
|
|
|
|
"I don't think so much of it," said the girl. "I'm used to it,
|
|
I suppose. But I can't think how a kid like you comes to be out
|
|
all alone this time o' night."
|
|
|
|
She called him a kid, but she was not really a month older than he was;
|
|
only she had had to work for her bread, and that so soon makes
|
|
people older.
|
|
|
|
"But I shouldn't have been out so late if I hadn't got down
|
|
to help you," said Diamond. "North Wind is gone home long ago."
|
|
|
|
"I think you must ha' got out o' one o' them Hidget Asylms,"
|
|
said the girl. "You said something about the north wind afore
|
|
that I couldn't get the rights of."
|
|
|
|
So now, for the sake of his character, Diamond had to tell her
|
|
the whole story.
|
|
|
|
She did not believe a word of it. She said he wasn't such a flat
|
|
as to believe all that bosh. But as she spoke there came a great
|
|
blast of wind through the arch, and set the barrel rolling. So they
|
|
made haste to get out of it, for they had no notion of being rolled
|
|
over and over as if they had been packed tight and wouldn't hurt,
|
|
like a barrel of herrings.
|
|
|
|
"I thought we should have had a sleep," said Diamond; "but I can't
|
|
say I'm very sleepy after all. Come, let's go on again."
|
|
|
|
They wandered on and on, sometimes sitting on a door-step,
|
|
but always turning into lanes or fields when they had a chance.
|
|
|
|
They found themselves at last on a rising ground that sloped rather
|
|
steeply on the other side. It was a waste kind of spot below,
|
|
bounded by an irregular wall, with a few doors in it. Outside lay
|
|
broken things in general, from garden rollers to flower-pots and
|
|
wine-bottles. But the moment they reached the brow of the rising ground,
|
|
a gust of wind seized them and blew them down hill as fast as they
|
|
could run. Nor could Diamond stop before he went bang against one
|
|
of the doors in the wall. To his dismay it burst open. When they
|
|
came to themselves they peeped in. It was the back door of a garden.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, ah!" cried Diamond, after staring for a few moments, "I thought so!
|
|
North Wind takes nobody in! Here I am in master's garden!
|
|
I tell you what, little girl, you just bore a hole in old Sal's wall,
|
|
and put your mouth to it, and say, "Please, North Wind, mayn't I go
|
|
out with you?" and then you'll see what'll come."
|
|
|
|
"I daresay I shall. But I'm out in the wind too often already
|
|
to want more of it."
|
|
|
|
"I said with the North Wind, not in it."
|
|
|
|
"It's all one."
|
|
|
|
"It's not all one."
|
|
|
|
"It is all one."
|
|
|
|
"But I know best."
|
|
|
|
"And I know better. I'll box your ears," said the girl.
|
|
|
|
Diamond got very angry. But he remembered that even if she did box
|
|
his ears, he musn't box hers again, for she was a girl, and all
|
|
that boys must do, if girls are rude, is to go away and leave them.
|
|
So he went in at the door.
|
|
|
|
"Good-bye, mister" said the girl.
|
|
|
|
This brought Diamond to his senses.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sorry I was cross," he said. "Come in, and my mother will
|
|
give you some breakfast."
|
|
|
|
"No, thank you. I must be off to my crossing. It's morning now."
|
|
|
|
"I'm very sorry for you," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is a life to be tired of--what with old Sal, and so many
|
|
holes in my shoes."
|
|
|
|
"I wonder you're so good. I should kill myself."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no, you wouldn't! When I think of it, I always want to see what's
|
|
coming next, and so I always wait till next is over. Well! I suppose
|
|
there's somebody happy somewheres. But it ain't in them carriages.
|
|
Oh my! how they do look sometimes--fit to bite your head off! Good-bye!"
|
|
|
|
She ran up the hill and disappeared behind it. Then Diamond shut
|
|
the door as he best could, and ran through the kitchen-garden to
|
|
the stable. And wasn't he glad to get into his own blessed bed again!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V
|
|
|
|
THE SUMMER-HOUSE
|
|
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND said nothing to his mother about his adventures. He had
|
|
half a notion that North Wind was a friend of his mother, and that,
|
|
if she did not know all about it, at least she did not mind his going
|
|
anywhere with the lady of the wind. At the same time he doubted
|
|
whether he might not appear to be telling stories if he told all,
|
|
especially as he could hardly believe it himself when he thought
|
|
about it in the middle of the day, although when the twilight was
|
|
once half-way on to night he had no doubt about it, at least for
|
|
the first few days after he had been with her. The girl that swept
|
|
the crossing had certainly refused to believe him. Besides, he felt
|
|
sure that North Wind would tell him if he ought to speak.
|
|
|
|
It was some time before he saw the lady of the wind again.
|
|
Indeed nothing remarkable took place in Diamond's history until
|
|
the following week. This was what happened then. Diamond the horse
|
|
wanted new shoes, and Diamond's father took him out of the stable,
|
|
and was just getting on his back to ride him to the forge, when he saw
|
|
his little boy standing by the pump, and looking at him wistfully.
|
|
Then the coachman took his foot out of the stirrup, left his hold
|
|
of the mane and bridle, came across to his boy, lifted him up,
|
|
and setting him on the horse's back, told him to sit up like a man.
|
|
He then led away both Diamonds together.
|
|
|
|
The boy atop felt not a little tremulous as the great muscles that
|
|
lifted the legs of the horse knotted and relaxed against his legs,
|
|
and he cowered towards the withers, grasping with his hands the bit
|
|
of mane worn short by the collar; but when his father looked back at him,
|
|
saying once more, "Sit up, Diamond," he let the mane go and sat up,
|
|
notwithstanding that the horse, thinking, I suppose, that his
|
|
master had said to him, "Come up, Diamond," stepped out faster.
|
|
For both the Diamonds were just grandly obedient. And Diamond soon
|
|
found that, as he was obedient to his father, so the horse was
|
|
obedient to him. For he had not ridden far before he found courage
|
|
to reach forward and catch hold of the bridle, and when his father,
|
|
whose hand was upon it, felt the boy pull it towards him, he looked
|
|
up and smiled, and, well pleased, let go his hold, and left Diamond
|
|
to guide Diamond; and the boy soon found that he could do so perfectly.
|
|
It was a grand thing to be able to guide a great beast like that.
|
|
And another discovery he made was that, in order to guide the horse,
|
|
he had in a measure to obey the horse first. If he did not yield
|
|
his body to the motions of the horse's body, he could not guide him;
|
|
he must fall off.
|
|
|
|
The blacksmith lived at some distance, deeper into London.
|
|
As they crossed the angle of a square, Diamond, who was now quite
|
|
comfortable on his living throne, was glancing this way and that in
|
|
a gentle pride, when he saw a girl sweeping a crossing scuddingly
|
|
before a lady. The lady was his father's mistress, Mrs. Coleman,
|
|
and the little girl was she for whose sake he had got off North
|
|
Wind's back. He drew Diamond's bridle in eager anxiety to see whether
|
|
her outstretched hand would gather a penny from Mrs. Coleman.
|
|
But she had given one at the last crossing, and the hand returned
|
|
only to grasp its broom. Diamond could not bear it. He had a penny
|
|
in his pocket, a gift of the same lady the day before, and he tumbled
|
|
off his horse to give it to the girl. He tumbled off, I say, for he
|
|
did tumble when he reached the ground. But he got up in an instant,
|
|
and ran, searching his pocket as he ran. She made him a pretty
|
|
courtesy when he offered his treasure, but with a bewildered stare.
|
|
She thought first: "Then he was on the back of the North Wind
|
|
after all!" but, looking up at the sound of the horse's feet
|
|
on the paved crossing, she changed her idea, saying to herself,
|
|
"North Wind is his father's horse! That's the secret of it!
|
|
Why couldn't he say so?" And she had a mind to refuse the penny.
|
|
But his smile put it all right, and she not only took his penny
|
|
but put it in her mouth with a "Thank you, mister. Did they wollop
|
|
you then?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh no!" answered Diamond. "They never wollops me."
|
|
|
|
"Lor!" said the little girl, and was speechless.
|
|
|
|
Meantime his father, looking up, and seeing the horse's back bare,
|
|
suffered a pang of awful dread, but the next moment catching sight
|
|
of him, took him up and put him on, saying--
|
|
|
|
"Don't get off again, Diamond. The horse might have put his foot
|
|
on you."
|
|
|
|
"No, father," answered the boy, and rode on in majestic safety.
|
|
|
|
The summer drew near, warm and splendid. Miss Coleman was a little
|
|
better in health, and sat a good deal in the garden. One day
|
|
she saw Diamond peeping through the shrubbery, and called him.
|
|
He talked to her so frankly that she often sent for him after that,
|
|
and by degrees it came about that he had leave to run in the garden
|
|
as he pleased. He never touched any of the flowers or blossoms,
|
|
for he was not like some boys who cannot enjoy a thing without
|
|
pulling it to pieces, and so preventing every one from enjoying it
|
|
after them.
|
|
|
|
A week even makes such a long time in a child's life, that Diamond
|
|
had begun once more to feel as if North Wind were a dream of some
|
|
far-off year.
|
|
|
|
One hot evening, he had been sitting with the young mistress,
|
|
as they called her, in a little summer-house at the bottom
|
|
of the lawn--a wonderful thing for beauty, the boy thought,
|
|
for a little window in the side of it was made of coloured glass.
|
|
It grew dusky, and the lady began to feel chill, and went in,
|
|
leaving the boy in the summer-house. He sat there gazing out at
|
|
a bed of tulips, which, although they had closed for the night,
|
|
could not go quite asleep for the wind that kept waving them about.
|
|
All at once he saw a great bumble-bee fly out of one of the tulips.
|
|
|
|
"There! that is something done," said a voice--a gentle, merry,
|
|
childish voice, but so tiny. "At last it was. I thought
|
|
he would have had to stay there all night, poor fellow! I did."
|
|
|
|
Diamond could not tell whether the voice was near or far away,
|
|
it was so small and yet so clear. He had never seen a fairy,
|
|
but he had heard of such, and he began to look all about for one.
|
|
And there was the tiniest creature sliding down the stem of
|
|
the tulip!
|
|
|
|
"Are you the fairy that herds the bees?" he asked, going out of the
|
|
summer-house, and down on his knees on the green shore of the tulip-bed.
|
|
|
|
"I'm not a fairy," answered the little creature.
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that?"
|
|
|
|
"It would become you better to ask how you are to know it."
|
|
|
|
"You've just told me."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. But what's the use of knowing a thing only because you're
|
|
told it?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, how am I to know you are not a fairy? You do look very
|
|
like one."
|
|
|
|
"In the first place, fairies are much bigger than you see me."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" said Diamond reflectively; "I thought they were very little."
|
|
|
|
"But they might be tremendously bigger than I am, and yet not
|
|
very big. Why, I could be six times the size I am, and not be
|
|
very huge. Besides, a fairy can't grow big and little at will,
|
|
though the nursery-tales do say so: they don't know better.
|
|
You stupid Diamond! have you never seen me before?"
|
|
|
|
And, as she spoke, a moan of wind bent the tulips almost to
|
|
the ground, and the creature laid her hand on Diamond's shoulder.
|
|
In a moment he knew that it was North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"I am very stupid," he said; "but I never saw you so small before,
|
|
not even when you were nursing the primrose."
|
|
|
|
"Must you see me every size that can be measured before you
|
|
know me, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"But how could I think it was you taking care of a great
|
|
stupid bumble-bee?"
|
|
|
|
"The more stupid he was the more need he had to be taken care of.
|
|
What with sucking honey and trying to open the door, he was nearly dated;
|
|
and when it opened in the morning to let the sun see the tulip's heart,
|
|
what would the sun have thought to find such a stupid thing lying there--
|
|
with wings too?"
|
|
|
|
"But how do you have time to look after bees?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't look after bees. I had this one to look after.
|
|
It was hard work, though."
|
|
|
|
"Hard work! Why, you could blow a chimney down, or--or a boy's
|
|
cap off," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Both are easier than to blow a tulip open. But I scarcely know
|
|
the difference between hard and easy. I am always able for what I
|
|
have to do. When I see my work, I just rush at it--and it is done.
|
|
But I mustn't chatter. I have got to sink a ship to-night."
|
|
|
|
"Sink a ship! What! with men in it?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, and women too."
|
|
|
|
"How dreadful! I wish you wouldn't talk so."
|
|
|
|
"It is rather dreadful. But it is my work. I must do it."
|
|
|
|
"I hope you won't ask me to go with you."
|
|
|
|
"No, I won't ask you. But you must come for all that."
|
|
|
|
"I won't then."
|
|
|
|
"Won't you?" And North Wind grew a tall lady, and looked him
|
|
in the eyes, and Diamond said--
|
|
|
|
"Please take me. You cannot be cruel."
|
|
|
|
"No; I could not be cruel if I would. I can do nothing cruel,
|
|
although I often do what looks like cruel to those who do not know
|
|
what I really am doing. The people they say I drown, I only carry
|
|
away to--to--to--well, the back of the North Wind--that is what they
|
|
used to call it long ago, only I never saw the place."
|
|
|
|
"How can you carry them there if you never saw it?"
|
|
|
|
"I know the way."
|
|
|
|
"But how is it you never saw it?"
|
|
|
|
"Because it is behind me."
|
|
|
|
"But you can look round."
|
|
|
|
"Not far enough to see my own back. No; I always look before me.
|
|
In fact, I grow quite blind and deaf when I try to see my back.
|
|
I only mind my work."
|
|
|
|
"But how does it be your work?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah, that I can't tell you. I only know it is, because when I do it
|
|
I feel all right, and when I don't I feel all wrong. East Wind says--
|
|
only one does not exactly know how much to believe of what she says,
|
|
for she is very naughty sometimes--she says it is all managed
|
|
by a baby; but whether she is good or naughty when she says that,
|
|
I don't know. I just stick to my work. It is all one to me to
|
|
let a bee out of a tulip, or to sweep the cobwebs from the sky.
|
|
You would like to go with me to-night?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't want to see a ship sunk."
|
|
|
|
"But suppose I had to take you?"
|
|
|
|
"Why, then, of course I must go."
|
|
|
|
"There's a good Diamond.--I think I had better be growing a bit.
|
|
Only you must go to bed first. I can't take you till you're in bed.
|
|
That's the law about the children. So I had better go and do something
|
|
else first."
|
|
|
|
"Very well, North Wind," said Diamond. "What are you going
|
|
to do first, if you please?"
|
|
|
|
"I think I may tell you. Jump up on the top of the wall, there."
|
|
|
|
"I can't."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! and I can't help you--you haven't been to bed yet, you see.
|
|
Come out to the road with me, just in front of the coach-house, and I
|
|
will show you."
|
|
|
|
North Wind grew very small indeed, so small that she could not
|
|
have blown the dust off a dusty miller, as the Scotch children
|
|
call a yellow auricula. Diamond could not even see the blades
|
|
of grass move as she flitted along by his foot. They left the lawn,
|
|
went out by the wicket in the-coach-house gates, and then crossed
|
|
the road to the low wall that separated it from the river.
|
|
|
|
"You can get up on this wall, Diamond," said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but my mother has forbidden me."
|
|
|
|
"Then don't," said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"But I can see over," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! to be sure. I can't."
|
|
|
|
So saying, North Wind gave a little bound, and stood on the top
|
|
of the wall. She was just about the height a dragon-fly would be,
|
|
if it stood on end.
|
|
|
|
"You darling!" said Diamond, seeing what a lovely little toy-woman
|
|
she was.
|
|
|
|
"Don't be impertinent, Master Diamond," said North Wind.
|
|
"If there's one thing makes me more angry than another, it is the way
|
|
you humans judge things by their size. I am quite as respectable
|
|
now as I shall be six hours after this, when I take an East
|
|
Indiaman by the royals, twist her round, and push her under.
|
|
You have no right to address me in such a fashion."
|
|
|
|
But as she spoke, the tiny face wore the smile of a great, grand woman.
|
|
She was only having her own beautiful fun out of Diamond, and true
|
|
woman's fun never hurts.
|
|
|
|
"But look there!" she resumed. "Do you see a boat with one man in it--
|
|
a green and white boat?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; quite well."
|
|
|
|
"That's a poet."
|
|
|
|
"I thought you said it was a bo-at."
|
|
|
|
"Stupid pet! Don't you know what a poet is?"
|
|
|
|
"Why, a thing to sail on the water in."
|
|
|
|
"Well, perhaps you're not so far wrong. Some poets do carry
|
|
people over the sea. But I have no business to talk so much.
|
|
The man is a poet."
|
|
|
|
"The boat is a boat," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Can't you spell?" asked North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Not very well."
|
|
|
|
"So I see. A poet is not a bo-at, as you call it. A poet is
|
|
a man who is glad of something, and tries to make other people
|
|
glad of it too."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! now I know. Like the man in the sweety-shop."
|
|
|
|
"Not very. But I see it is no use. I wasn't sent to tell you,
|
|
and so I can't tell you. I must be off. Only first just look at
|
|
the man."
|
|
|
|
"He's not much of a rower" said Diamond--"paddling first with one
|
|
fin and then with the other."
|
|
|
|
"Now look here!" said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
And she flashed like a dragon-fly across the water, whose surface
|
|
rippled and puckered as she passed. The next moment the man
|
|
in the boat glanced about him, and bent to his oars. The boat
|
|
flew over the rippling water. Man and boat and river were awake.
|
|
The same instant almost, North Wind perched again upon the river wall.
|
|
|
|
"How did you do that?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I blew in his face," answered North Wind. "I don't see how
|
|
that could do it," said Diamond. "I daresay not. And therefore
|
|
you will say you don't believe it could."
|
|
|
|
"No, no, dear North Wind. I know you too well not to believe you."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I blew in his face, and that woke him up."
|
|
|
|
"But what was the good of it?"
|
|
|
|
"Why! don't you see? Look at him--how he is pulling. I blew
|
|
the mist out of him."
|
|
|
|
"How was that?"
|
|
|
|
"That is just what I cannot tell you."
|
|
|
|
"But you did it."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I have to do ten thousand things without being able to tell how."
|
|
|
|
"I don't like that," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
He was staring after the boat. Hearing no answer, he looked down
|
|
to the wall.
|
|
|
|
North Wind was gone. Away across the river went a long ripple--
|
|
what sailors call a cat's paw. The man in the boat was putting up
|
|
a sail. The moon was coming to herself on the edge of a great cloud,
|
|
and the sail began to shine white. Diamond rubbed his eyes,
|
|
and wondered what it was all about. Things seemed going on around him,
|
|
and all to understand each other, but he could make nothing of it.
|
|
So he put his hands in his pockets, and went in to have his tea.
|
|
The night was very hot, for the wind had fallen again.
|
|
|
|
"You don't seem very well to-night, Diamond," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"I am quite well, mother," returned Diamond, who was only puzzled.
|
|
|
|
"I think you had better go to bed," she added.
|
|
|
|
"Very well, mother," he answered.
|
|
|
|
He stopped for one moment to look out of the window. Above the
|
|
moon the clouds were going different ways. Somehow or other this
|
|
troubled him, but, notwithstanding, he was soon fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
He woke in the middle of the night and the darkness. A terrible
|
|
noise was rumbling overhead, like the rolling beat of great drums
|
|
echoing through a brazen vault. The roof of the loft in which he
|
|
lay had no ceiling; only the tiles were between him and the sky.
|
|
For a while he could not come quite awake, for the noise kept beating
|
|
him down, so that his heart was troubled and fluttered painfully.
|
|
A second peal of thunder burst over his head, and almost choked him
|
|
with fear. Nor did he recover until the great blast that followed,
|
|
having torn some tiles off the roof, sent a spout of wind down
|
|
into his bed and over his face, which brought him wide awake,
|
|
and gave him back his courage. The same moment he heard a mighty
|
|
yet musical voice calling him.
|
|
|
|
"Come up, Diamond," it said. "It's all ready. I'm waiting for you."
|
|
|
|
He looked out of the bed, and saw a gigantic, powerful, but most
|
|
lovely arm--with a hand whose fingers were nothing the less ladylike
|
|
that they could have strangled a boa-constrictor, or choked a tigress
|
|
off its prey--stretched down through a big hole in the roof.
|
|
Without a moment's hesitation he reached out his tiny one, and laid
|
|
it in the grand palm before him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI
|
|
|
|
OUT IN THE STORM
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE hand felt its way up his arm, and, grasping it gently and
|
|
strongly above the elbow, lifted Diamond from the bed. The moment
|
|
he was through the hole in the roof, all the winds of heaven
|
|
seemed to lay hold upon him, and buffet him hither and thither.
|
|
His hair blew one way, his night-gown another, his legs threatened
|
|
to float from under him, and his head to grow dizzy with the swiftness
|
|
of the invisible assailant. Cowering, he clung with the other
|
|
hand to the huge hand which held his arm, and fear invaded his heart.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, North Wind!" he murmured, but the words vanished from his lips
|
|
as he had seen the soap-bubbles that burst too soon vanish from the
|
|
mouth of his pipe. The wind caught them, and they were nowhere.
|
|
They couldn't get out at all, but were torn away and strangled.
|
|
And yet North Wind heard them, and in her answer it seemed to Diamond
|
|
that just because she was so big and could not help it, and just
|
|
because her ear and her mouth must seem to him so dreadfully far away,
|
|
she spoke to him more tenderly and graciously than ever before.
|
|
Her voice was like the bass of a deep organ, without the groan in it;
|
|
like the most delicate of violin tones without the wail in it;
|
|
like the most glorious of trumpet-ejaculations without the defiance
|
|
in it; like the sound of falling water without the clatter and clash
|
|
in it: it was like all of them and neither of them--all of them
|
|
without their faults, each of them without its peculiarity:
|
|
after all, it was more like his mother's voice than anything else in
|
|
the world.
|
|
|
|
"Diamond, dear," she said, "be a man. What is fearful to you
|
|
is not the least fearful to me."
|
|
|
|
"But it can't hurt you," murmured Diamond, "for you're it."
|
|
|
|
"Then if I'm it, and have you in my arms, how can it hurt you?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes! I see," whispered Diamond. "But it looks so dreadful,
|
|
and it pushes me about so."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it does, my dear. That is what it was sent for."
|
|
|
|
At the same moment, a peal of thunder which shook Diamond's heart
|
|
against the sides of his bosom hurtled out of the heavens:
|
|
I cannot say out of the sky, for there was no sky. Diamond had
|
|
not seen the lightning, for he had been intent on finding the face
|
|
of North Wind. Every moment the folds of her garment would sweep
|
|
across his eyes and blind him, but between, he could just persuade
|
|
himself that he saw great glories of woman's eyes looking down
|
|
through rifts in the mountainous clouds over his head.
|
|
|
|
He trembled so at the thunder, that his knees failed him, and he sunk
|
|
down at North Wind's feet, and clasped her round the column of her ankle.
|
|
She instantly stooped, lifted him from the roof--up--up into her bosom,
|
|
and held him there, saying, as if to an inconsolable child--
|
|
|
|
"Diamond, dear, this will never do."
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes, it will," answered Diamond. "I am all right now--
|
|
quite comfortable, I assure you, dear North Wind. If you will
|
|
only let me stay here, I shall be all right indeed."
|
|
|
|
"But you will feel the wind here, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"I don't mind that a bit, so long as I feel your arms through it,"
|
|
answered Diamond, nestling closer to her grand bosom.
|
|
|
|
"Brave boy!" returned North Wind, pressing him closer.
|
|
|
|
"No," said Diamond, "I don't see that. It's not courage at all,
|
|
so long as I feel you there."
|
|
|
|
"But hadn't you better get into my hair? Then you would not feel
|
|
the wind; you will here."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, but, dear North Wind, you don't know how nice it is to feel
|
|
your arms about me. It is a thousand times better to have them
|
|
and the wind together, than to have only your hair and the back
|
|
of your neck and no wind at all."
|
|
|
|
"But it is surely more comfortable there?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, perhaps; but I begin to think there are better things than
|
|
being comfortable."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, indeed there are. Well, I will keep you in front of me.
|
|
You will feel the wind, but not too much. I shall only want one
|
|
arm to take care of you; the other will be quite enough to sink
|
|
the ship."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, dear North Wind! how can you talk so?"
|
|
|
|
"My dear boy, I never talk; I always mean what I say."
|
|
|
|
"Then you do mean to sink the ship with the other hand?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"It's not like you."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that?"
|
|
|
|
"Quite easily. Here you are taking care of a poor little boy
|
|
with one arm, and there you are sinking a ship with the other.
|
|
It can't be like you."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! but which is me? I can't be two mes, you know."
|
|
|
|
"No. Nobody can be two mes."
|
|
|
|
"Well, which me is me?"
|
|
|
|
"Now I must think. There looks to be two."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. That's the very point.--You can't be knowing the thing you
|
|
don't know, can you?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Which me do you know?"
|
|
|
|
"The kindest, goodest, best me in the world," answered Diamond,
|
|
clinging to North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Why am I good to you?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know."
|
|
|
|
"Have you ever done anything for me?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Then I must be good to you because I choose to be good to you."
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Why should I choose?"
|
|
|
|
"Because--because--because you like."
|
|
|
|
"Why should I like to be good to you?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know, except it be because it's good to be good to me."
|
|
|
|
"That's just it; I am good to you because I like to be good."
|
|
|
|
"Then why shouldn't you be good to other people as well as to me?"
|
|
|
|
"That's just what I don't know. Why shouldn't I?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know either. Then why shouldn't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I am."
|
|
|
|
"There it is again," said Diamond. "I don't see that you are.
|
|
It looks quite the other thing."
|
|
|
|
"Well, but listen to me, Diamond. You know the one me, you say,
|
|
and that is good."
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Do you know the other me as well?"
|
|
|
|
"No. I can't. I shouldn't like to."
|
|
|
|
"There it is. You don't know the other me. You are sure of one
|
|
of them?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And you are sure there can't be two mes?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Then the me you don't know must be the same as the me you do know,--
|
|
else there would be two mes?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Then the other me you don't know must be as kind as the me you
|
|
do know?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Besides, I tell you that it is so, only it doesn't look like it.
|
|
That I confess freely. Have you anything more to object?"
|
|
|
|
"No, no, dear North Wind; I am quite satisfied."
|
|
|
|
"Then I will tell you something you might object. You might say
|
|
that the me you know is like the other me, and that I am cruel
|
|
all through."
|
|
|
|
"I know that can't be, because you are so kind."
|
|
|
|
"But that kindness might be only a pretence for the sake of being
|
|
more cruel afterwards."
|
|
|
|
Diamond clung to her tighter than ever, crying--
|
|
|
|
"No, no, dear North Wind; I can't believe that. I don't believe it.
|
|
I won't believe it. That would kill me. I love you, and you
|
|
must love me, else how did I come to love you? How could you
|
|
know how to put on such a beautiful face if you did not love
|
|
me and the rest? No. You may sink as many ships as you like,
|
|
and I won't say another word. I can't say I shall like to see it,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
"That's quite another thing," said North Wind; and as she spoke
|
|
she gave one spring from the roof of the hay-loft, and rushed up
|
|
into the clouds, with Diamond on her left arm close to her heart.
|
|
And as if the clouds knew she had come, they burst into a fresh
|
|
jubilation of thunderous light. For a few moments, Diamond seemed
|
|
to be borne up through the depths of an ocean of dazzling flame;
|
|
the next, the winds were writhing around him like a storm of serpents.
|
|
For they were in the midst of the clouds and mists, and they
|
|
of course took the shapes of the wind, eddying and wreathing and
|
|
whirling and shooting and dashing about like grey and black water,
|
|
so that it was as if the wind itself had taken shape, and he saw
|
|
the grey and black wind tossing and raving most madly all about him.
|
|
Now it blinded him by smiting him upon the eyes; now it deafened
|
|
him by bellowing in his ears; for even when the thunder came he
|
|
knew now that it was the billows of the great ocean of the air
|
|
dashing against each other in their haste to fill the hollow
|
|
scooped out by the lightning; now it took his breath quite away
|
|
by sucking it from his body with the speed of its rush. But he did
|
|
not mind it. He only gasped first and then laughed, for the arm
|
|
of North Wind was about him, and he was leaning against her bosom.
|
|
It is quite impossible for me to describe what he saw. Did you ever
|
|
watch a great wave shoot into a winding passage amongst rocks?
|
|
If you ever did, you would see that the water rushed every way
|
|
at once, some of it even turning back and opposing the rest;
|
|
greater confusion you might see nowhere except in a crowd of
|
|
frightened people. Well, the wind was like that, except that it
|
|
went much faster, and therefore was much wilder, and twisted
|
|
and shot and curled and dodged and clashed and raved ten times
|
|
more madly than anything else in creation except human passions.
|
|
Diamond saw the threads of the lady's hair streaking it all.
|
|
In parts indeed he could not tell which was hair and which was
|
|
black storm and vapour. It seemed sometimes that all the great
|
|
billows of mist-muddy wind were woven out of the crossing lines
|
|
of North Wind's infinite hair, sweeping in endless intertwistings.
|
|
And Diamond felt as the wind seized on his hair, which his mother
|
|
kept rather long, as if he too was a part of the storm, and some
|
|
of its life went out from him. But so sheltered was he by North
|
|
Wind's arm and bosom that only at times, in the fiercer onslaught
|
|
of some curl-billowed eddy, did he recognise for a moment how wild
|
|
was the storm in which he was carried, nestling in its very core and
|
|
formative centre.
|
|
|
|
It seemed to Diamond likewise that they were motionless in this centre,
|
|
and that all the confusion and fighting went on around them.
|
|
Flash after flash illuminated the fierce chaos, revealing in varied
|
|
yellow and blue and grey and dusky red the vapourous contention;
|
|
peal after peal of thunder tore the infinite waste; but it seemed
|
|
to Diamond that North Wind and he were motionless, all but the hair.
|
|
It was not so. They were sweeping with the speed of the wind itself
|
|
towards the sea.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII
|
|
|
|
THE CATHEDRAL
|
|
|
|
|
|
I MUST not go on describing what cannot be described, for nothing
|
|
is more wearisome.
|
|
|
|
Before they reached the sea, Diamond felt North Wind's hair just
|
|
beginning to fall about him.
|
|
|
|
"Is the storm over, North Wind?" he called out.
|
|
|
|
"No, Diamond. I am only waiting a moment to set you down.
|
|
You would not like to see the ship sunk, and I am going to give you
|
|
a place to stop in till I come back for you."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! thank you," said Diamond. "I shall be sorry to leave you,
|
|
North Wind, but I would rather not see the ship go down. And I'm
|
|
afraid the poor people will cry, and I should hear them. Oh, dear!"
|
|
|
|
"There are a good many passengers on board; and to tell the truth,
|
|
Diamond, I don't care about your hearing the cry you speak of.
|
|
I am afraid you would not get it out of your little head again
|
|
for a long time."
|
|
|
|
"But how can you bear it then, North Wind? For I am sure you are kind.
|
|
I shall never doubt that again."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you how I am able to bear it, Diamond: I am always hearing,
|
|
through every noise, through all the noise I am making myself even,
|
|
the sound of a far-off song. I do not exactly know where it is,
|
|
or what it means; and I don't hear much of it, only the odour of
|
|
its music, as it were, flitting across the great billows of the ocean
|
|
outside this air in which I make such a storm; but what I do hear is
|
|
quite enough to make me able to bear the cry from the drowning ship.
|
|
So it would you if you could hear it."
|
|
|
|
"No, it wouldn't," returned Diamond, stoutly. "For they wouldn't
|
|
hear the music of the far-away song; and if they did, it wouldn't
|
|
do them any good. You see you and I are not going to be drowned,
|
|
and so we might enjoy it."
|
|
|
|
"But you have never heard the psalm, and you don't know what it
|
|
is like. Somehow, I can't say how, it tells me that all is right;
|
|
that it is coming to swallow up all cries."
|
|
|
|
"But that won't do them any good--the people, I mean," persisted Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"It must. It must," said North Wind, hurriedly. "It wouldn't
|
|
be the song it seems to be if it did not swallow up all their fear
|
|
and pain too, and set them singing it themselves with the rest.
|
|
I am sure it will. And do you know, ever since I knew I had hair,
|
|
that is, ever since it began to go out and away, that song has been
|
|
coming nearer and nearer. Only I must say it was some thousand years
|
|
before I heard it."
|
|
|
|
"But how can you say it was coming nearer when you did not hear it?"
|
|
asked doubting little Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Since I began to hear it, I know it is growing louder, therefore I
|
|
judge it was coming nearer and nearer until I did hear it first.
|
|
I'm not so very old, you know--a few thousand years only--and I was
|
|
quite a baby when I heard the noise first, but I knew it must come
|
|
from the voices of people ever so much older and wiser than I was.
|
|
I can't sing at all, except now and then, and I can never tell what my
|
|
song is going to be; I only know what it is after I have sung it.--
|
|
But this will never do. Will you stop here?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't see anywhere to stop," said Diamond. "Your hair is all
|
|
down like a darkness, and I can't see through it if I knock my eyes
|
|
into it ever so much."
|
|
|
|
"Look, then," said North Wind; and, with one sweep of her great
|
|
white arm, she swept yards deep of darkness like a great curtain
|
|
from before the face of the boy.
|
|
|
|
And lo! it was a blue night, lit up with stars. Where it did
|
|
not shine with stars it shimmered with the milk of the stars,
|
|
except where, just opposite to Diamond's face, the grey towers
|
|
of a cathedral blotted out each its own shape of sky and stars.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! what's that?" cried Diamond, struck with a kind of terror,
|
|
for he had never seen a cathedral, and it rose before him with an
|
|
awful reality in the midst of the wide spaces, conquering emptiness
|
|
with grandeur.
|
|
|
|
"A very good place for you to wait in," said North Wind. "But we
|
|
shall go in, and you shall judge for yourself."
|
|
|
|
There was an open door in the middle of one of the towers, leading out
|
|
upon the roof, and through it they passed. Then North Wind set
|
|
Diamond on his feet, and he found himself at the top of a stone stair,
|
|
which went twisting away down into the darkness for only a little
|
|
light came in at the door. It was enough, however, to allow Diamond
|
|
to see that North Wind stood beside him. He looked up to find
|
|
her face, and saw that she was no longer a beautiful giantess,
|
|
but the tall gracious lady he liked best to see. She took his hand,
|
|
and, giving him the broad part of the spiral stair to walk on, led him
|
|
down a good way; then, opening another little door, led him out upon
|
|
a narrow gallery that ran all round the central part of the church,
|
|
on the ledges of the windows of the clerestory, and through openings
|
|
in the parts of the wall that divided the windows from each other.
|
|
It was very narrow, and except when they were passing through the wall,
|
|
Diamond saw nothing to keep him from falling into the church.
|
|
It lay below him like a great silent gulf hollowed in stone,
|
|
and he held his breath for fear as he looked down.
|
|
|
|
"What are you trembling for, little Diamond?" said the lady, as she
|
|
walked gently along, with her hand held out behind her leading him,
|
|
for there was not breadth enough for them to walk side by side.
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid of falling down there," answered Diamond. "It is
|
|
so deep down."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, rather," answered North Wind; "but you were a hundred times
|
|
higher a few minutes ago."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes, but somebody's arm was about me then," said Diamond,
|
|
putting his little mouth to the beautiful cold hand that had a hold
|
|
of his.
|
|
|
|
"What a dear little warm mouth you've got!" said North Wind.
|
|
"It is a pity you should talk nonsense with it. Don't you know I
|
|
have a hold of you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but I'm walking on my own legs, and they might slip.
|
|
I can't trust myself so well as your arms."
|
|
|
|
"But I have a hold of you, I tell you, foolish child."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but somehow I can't feel comfortable."
|
|
|
|
"If you were to fall, and my hold of you were to give way, I should
|
|
be down after you in a less moment than a lady's watch can tick,
|
|
and catch you long before you had reached the ground."
|
|
|
|
"I don't like it though," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! oh! oh!" he screamed the next moment, bent double with terror,
|
|
for North Wind had let go her hold of his hand, and had vanished,
|
|
leaving him standing as if rooted to the gallery.
|
|
|
|
She left the words, "Come after me," sounding in his ears.
|
|
|
|
But move he dared not. In a moment more he would from very terror
|
|
have fallen into the church, but suddenly there came a gentle
|
|
breath of cool wind upon his face, and it kept blowing upon him in
|
|
little puffs, and at every puff Diamond felt his faintness going away,
|
|
and his fear with it. Courage was reviving in his little heart,
|
|
and still the cool wafts of the soft wind breathed upon him,
|
|
and the soft wind was so mighty and strong within its gentleness,
|
|
that in a minute more Diamond was marching along the narrow ledge
|
|
as fearless for the time as North Wind herself.
|
|
|
|
He walked on and on, with the windows all in a row on one side of him,
|
|
and the great empty nave of the church echoing to every one of his
|
|
brave strides on the other, until at last he came to a little
|
|
open door, from which a broader stair led him down and down and down,
|
|
till at last all at once he found himself in the arms of North Wind,
|
|
who held him close to her, and kissed him on the forehead.
|
|
Diamond nestled to her, and murmured into her bosom,--"Why did you
|
|
leave me, dear North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I wanted you to walk alone," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"But it is so much nicer here!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I daresay; but I couldn't hold a little coward to my heart.
|
|
It would make me so cold!"
|
|
|
|
"But I wasn't brave of myself," said Diamond, whom my older readers
|
|
will have already discovered to be a true child in this, that he
|
|
was given to metaphysics. "It was the wind that blew in my face
|
|
that made me brave. Wasn't it now, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes: I know that. You had to be taught what courage was.
|
|
And you couldn't know what it was without feeling it: therefore it
|
|
was given you. But don't you feel as if you would try to be brave
|
|
yourself next time?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do. But trying is not much."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it is--a very great deal, for it is a beginning. And a beginning
|
|
is the greatest thing of all. To try to be brave is to be brave.
|
|
The coward who tries to be brave is before the man who is brave
|
|
because he is made so, and never had to try."
|
|
|
|
"How kind you are, North Wind!"
|
|
|
|
"I am only just. All kindness is but justice. We owe it."
|
|
|
|
"I don't quite understand that."
|
|
|
|
"Never mind; you will some day. There is no hurry about understanding
|
|
it now."
|
|
|
|
"Who blew the wind on me that made me brave?"
|
|
|
|
"I did."
|
|
|
|
"I didn't see you."
|
|
|
|
"Therefore you can believe me."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes; of course. But how was it that such a little breath
|
|
could be so strong?"
|
|
|
|
"That I don't know."
|
|
|
|
"But you made it strong?"
|
|
|
|
"No: I only blew it. I knew it would make you strong, just as it
|
|
did the man in the boat, you remember. But how my breath has
|
|
that power I cannot tell. It was put into it when I was made.
|
|
That is all I know. But really I must be going about my work."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! the poor ship! I wish you would stop here, and let the poor
|
|
ship go."
|
|
|
|
"That I dare not do. Will you stop here till I come back?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. You won't be long?"
|
|
|
|
"Not longer than I can help. Trust me, you shall get home before
|
|
the morning."
|
|
|
|
In a moment North Wind was gone, and the next Diamond heard
|
|
a moaning about the church, which grew and grew to a roaring.
|
|
The storm was up again, and he knew that North Wind's hair was flying.
|
|
|
|
The church was dark. Only a little light came through the windows,
|
|
which were almost all of that precious old stained glass which
|
|
is so much lovelier than the new. But Diamond could not see
|
|
how beautiful they were, for there was not enough of light
|
|
in the stars to show the colours of them. He could only just
|
|
distinguish them from the walls, He looked up, but could not see
|
|
the gallery along which he had passed. He could only tell where it
|
|
was far up by the faint glimmer of the windows of the clerestory,
|
|
whose sills made part of it. The church grew very lonely about him,
|
|
and he began to feel like a child whose mother has forsaken it.
|
|
Only he knew that to be left alone is not always to be forsaken.
|
|
|
|
He began to feel his way about the place, and for a while went
|
|
wandering up and down. His little footsteps waked little answering
|
|
echoes in the great house. It wasn't too big to mind him.
|
|
It was as if the church knew he was there, and meant to make itself
|
|
his house. So it went on giving back an answer to every step,
|
|
until at length Diamond thought he should like to say something out loud,
|
|
and see what the church would answer. But he found he was afraid
|
|
to speak. He could not utter a word for fear of the loneliness.
|
|
Perhaps it was as well that he did not, for the sound of a spoken
|
|
word would have made him feel the place yet more deserted and empty.
|
|
But he thought he could sing. He was fond of singing, and at home he
|
|
used to sing, to tunes of his own, all the nursery rhymes he knew.
|
|
So he began to try `Hey diddle diddle', but it wouldn't do.
|
|
Then he tried `Little Boy Blue', but it was no better. Neither would
|
|
`Sing a Song of Sixpence' sing itself at all. Then he tried `Poor
|
|
old Cockytoo', but he wouldn't do. They all sounded so silly!
|
|
and he had never thought them silly before. So he was quiet,
|
|
and listened to the echoes that came out of the dark corners in answer
|
|
to his footsteps.
|
|
|
|
At last he gave a great sigh, and said, "I'm so tired." But he did
|
|
not hear the gentle echo that answered from far away over his head,
|
|
for at the same moment he came against the lowest of a few steps
|
|
that stretched across the church, and fell down and hurt his arm.
|
|
He cried a little first, and then crawled up the steps on his
|
|
hands and knees. At the top he came to a little bit of carpet,
|
|
on which he lay down; and there he lay staring at the dull window
|
|
that rose nearly a hundred feet above his head.
|
|
|
|
Now this was the eastern window of the church, and the moon was at
|
|
that moment just on the edge of the horizon. The next, she was peeping
|
|
over it. And lo! with the moon, St. John and St. Paul, and the rest
|
|
of them, began to dawn in the window in their lovely garments.
|
|
Diamond did not know that the wonder-working moon was behind,
|
|
and he thought all the light was coming out of the window itself,
|
|
and that the good old men were appearing to help him, growing out
|
|
of the night and the darkness, because he had hurt his arm,
|
|
and was very tired and lonely, and North Wind was so long in coming.
|
|
So he lay and looked at them backwards over his head, wondering when
|
|
they would come down or what they would do next. They were very dim,
|
|
for the moonlight was not strong enough for the colours, and he
|
|
had enough to do with his eyes trying to make out their shapes.
|
|
So his eyes grew tired, and more and more tired, and his eyelids
|
|
grew so heavy that they would keep tumbling down over his eyes.
|
|
He kept lifting them and lifting them, but every time they were
|
|
heavier than the last. It was no use: they were too much for him.
|
|
Sometimes before he had got them half up, down they were again;
|
|
and at length he gave it up quite, and the moment he gave it up, he was
|
|
fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
|
|
|
THE EAST WINDOW
|
|
|
|
|
|
THAT Diamond had fallen fast asleep is very evident from the strange
|
|
things he now fancied as taking place. For he thought he heard
|
|
a sound as of whispering up in the great window. He tried to open
|
|
his eyes, but he could not. And the whispering went on and grew
|
|
louder and louder, until he could hear every word that was said.
|
|
He thought it was the Apostles talking about him. But he could not
|
|
open his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"And how comes he to be lying there, St. Peter?" said one.
|
|
|
|
"I think I saw him a while ago up in the gallery, under the
|
|
Nicodemus window. Perhaps he has fallen down.
|
|
|
|
"What do you think, St. Matthew?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't think he could have crept here after falling from such
|
|
a height. He must have been killed."
|
|
|
|
"What are we to do with him? We can't leave him lying there.
|
|
And we could not make him comfortable up here in the window:
|
|
it's rather crowded already. What do you say, St. Thomas?"
|
|
|
|
"Let's go down and look at him."
|
|
|
|
There came a rustling, and a chinking, for some time, and then
|
|
there was a silence, and Diamond felt somehow that all the Apostles
|
|
were standing round him and looking down on him. And still he
|
|
could not open his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter with him, St. Luke?" asked one.
|
|
|
|
"There's nothing the matter with him," answered St. Luke, who must
|
|
have joined the company of the Apostles from the next window,
|
|
one would think. "He's in a sound sleep."
|
|
|
|
"I have it," cried another. "This is one of North Wind's tricks.
|
|
She has caught him up and dropped him at our door, like a withered
|
|
leaf or a foundling baby. I don't understand that woman's conduct,
|
|
I must say. As if we hadn't enough to do with our money,
|
|
without going taking care of other people's children! That's not
|
|
what our forefathers built cathedrals for."
|
|
|
|
Now Diamond could not bear to hear such things against North Wind,
|
|
who, he knew, never played anybody a trick. She was far too busy
|
|
with her own work for that. He struggled hard to open his eyes,
|
|
but without success.
|
|
|
|
"She should consider that a church is not a place for pranks,
|
|
not to mention that we live in it," said another.
|
|
|
|
"It certainly is disrespectful of her. But she always is disrespectful.
|
|
What right has she to bang at our windows as she has been doing
|
|
the whole of this night? I daresay there is glass broken somewhere.
|
|
I know my blue robe is in a dreadful mess with the rain first and
|
|
the dust after. It will cost me shillings to clean it."
|
|
|
|
Then Diamond knew that they could not be Apostles, talking like this.
|
|
They could only be the sextons and vergers and such-like, who got
|
|
up at night, and put on the robes of deans and bishops, and called
|
|
each other grand names, as the foolish servants he had heard his
|
|
father tell of call themselves lords and ladies, after their masters
|
|
and mistresses. And he was so angry at their daring to abuse North Wind,
|
|
that he jumped up, crying--"North Wind knows best what she is about.
|
|
She has a good right to blow the cobwebs from your windows, for she
|
|
was sent to do it. She sweeps them away from grander places,
|
|
I can tell you, for I've been with her at it."
|
|
|
|
This was what he began to say, but as he spoke his eyes came
|
|
wide open, and behold, there were neither Apostles nor vergers there--
|
|
not even a window with the effigies of holy men in it, but a dark heap
|
|
of hay all about him, and the little panes in the roof of his loft
|
|
glimmering blue in the light of the morning. Old Diamond was coming
|
|
awake down below in the stable. In a moment more he was on his feet,
|
|
and shaking himself so that young Diamond's bed trembled under him.
|
|
|
|
"He's grand at shaking himself," said Diamond. "I wish I could
|
|
shake myself like that. But then I can wash myself, and he can't.
|
|
What fun it would be to see Old Diamond washing his face with his
|
|
hoofs and iron shoes! Wouldn't it be a picture?"
|
|
|
|
So saying, he got up and dressed himself. Then he went out into
|
|
the garden. There must have been a tremendous wind in the night,
|
|
for although all was quiet now, there lay the little summer-house
|
|
crushed to the ground, and over it the great elm-tree, which
|
|
the wind had broken across, being much decayed in the middle.
|
|
Diamond almost cried to see the wilderness of green leaves, which used
|
|
to be so far up in the blue air, tossing about in the breeze,
|
|
and liking it best when the wind blew it most, now lying so near
|
|
the ground, and without any hope of ever getting up into the deep
|
|
air again.
|
|
|
|
"I wonder how old the tree is!" thought Diamond. "It must take
|
|
a long time to get so near the sky as that poor tree was."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, indeed," said a voice beside him, for Diamond had spoken
|
|
the last words aloud.
|
|
|
|
Diamond started, and looking around saw a clergyman, a brother of
|
|
Mrs. Coleman, who happened to be visiting her. He was a great scholar,
|
|
and was in the habit of rising early.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you, my man?" he added.
|
|
|
|
"Little Diamond," answered the boy.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! I have heard of you. How do you come to be up so early?"
|
|
|
|
"Because the sham Apostles talked such nonsense, they waked me up."
|
|
|
|
The clergyman stared. Diamond saw that he had better have held
|
|
his tongue, for he could not explain things.
|
|
|
|
"You must have been dreaming, my little man," said he. "Dear! dear!"
|
|
he went on, looking at the tree, "there has been terrible work here.
|
|
This is the north wind's doing. What a pity! I wish we lived at
|
|
the back of it, I'm sure."
|
|
|
|
"Where is that sir?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Away in the Hyperborean regions," answered the clergyman, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"I never heard of the place," returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I daresay not," answered the clergyman; "but if this tree had
|
|
been there now, it would not have been blown down, for there
|
|
is no wind there."
|
|
|
|
"But, please, sir, if it had been there," said Diamond, "we should
|
|
not have had to be sorry for it."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly not."
|
|
|
|
"Then we shouldn't have had to be glad for it, either."
|
|
|
|
"You're quite right, my boy," said the clergyman, looking at him
|
|
very kindly, as he turned away to the house, with his eyes bent
|
|
towards the earth. But Diamond thought within himself, "I will
|
|
ask North Wind next time I see her to take me to that country.
|
|
I think she did speak about it once before."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX
|
|
|
|
HOW DIAMOND GOT TO THE BACK OF THE NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHEN Diamond went home to breakfast, he found his father and mother
|
|
already seated at the table. They were both busy with their bread
|
|
and butter, and Diamond sat himself down in his usual place.
|
|
His mother looked up at him, and, after watching him for a moment, said:
|
|
|
|
"I don't think the boy is looking well, husband."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you? Well, I don't know. I think he looks pretty bobbish.
|
|
How do you feel yourself, Diamond, my boy?"
|
|
|
|
"Quite well, thank you, father; at least, I think I've got
|
|
a little headache."
|
|
|
|
"There! I told you," said his father and mother both at once.
|
|
|
|
"The child's very poorly" added his mother.
|
|
|
|
"The child's quite well," added his father.
|
|
|
|
And then they both laughed.
|
|
|
|
"You see," said his mother, "I've had a letter from my sister
|
|
at Sandwich."
|
|
|
|
"Sleepy old hole!" said his father.
|
|
|
|
"Don't abuse the place; there's good people in it," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Right, old lady," returned his father; "only I don't believe there
|
|
are more than two pair of carriage-horses in the whole blessed place."
|
|
|
|
"Well, people can get to heaven without carriages--or coachmen
|
|
either, husband. Not that I should like to go without my coachman,
|
|
you know. But about the boy?"
|
|
|
|
"What boy?"
|
|
|
|
"That boy, there, staring at you with his goggle-eyes."
|
|
|
|
"Have I got goggle-eyes, mother?" asked Diamond, a little dismayed.
|
|
|
|
"Not too goggle," said his mother, who was quite proud of her
|
|
boy's eyes, only did not want to make him vain.
|
|
|
|
"Not too goggle; only you need not stare so."
|
|
|
|
"Well, what about him?" said his father.
|
|
|
|
"I told you I had got a letter."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, from your sister; not from Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"La, husband! you've got out of bed the wrong leg first this morning,
|
|
I do believe."
|
|
|
|
"I always get out with both at once," said his father, laughing.
|
|
|
|
"Well, listen then. His aunt wants the boy to go down and see her."
|
|
|
|
"And that's why you want to make out that he ain't looking well."
|
|
|
|
"No more he is. I think he had better go."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I don't care, if you can find the money," said his father.
|
|
|
|
"I'll manage that," said his mother; and so it was agreed that
|
|
Diamond should go to Sandwich.
|
|
|
|
I will not describe the preparations Diamond made. You would have
|
|
thought he had been going on a three months' voyage. Nor will I
|
|
describe the journey, for our business is now at the place.
|
|
He was met at the station by his aunt, a cheerful middle-aged woman,
|
|
and conveyed in safety to the sleepy old town, as his father called it.
|
|
And no wonder that it was sleepy, for it was nearly dead of old age.
|
|
|
|
Diamond went about staring with his beautiful goggle-eyes,
|
|
at the quaint old streets, and the shops, and the houses.
|
|
Everything looked very strange, indeed; for here was a town
|
|
abandoned by its nurse, the sea, like an old oyster left on the
|
|
shore till it gaped for weariness. It used to be one of the five
|
|
chief seaports in England, but it began to hold itself too high,
|
|
and the consequence was the sea grew less and less intimate with it,
|
|
gradually drew back, and kept more to itself, till at length it
|
|
left it high and dry: Sandwich was a seaport no more; the sea
|
|
went on with its own tide-business a long way off, and forgot it.
|
|
Of course it went to sleep, and had no more to do with ships.
|
|
That's what comes to cities and nations, and boys and girls, who say,
|
|
"I can do without your help. I'm enough for myself."
|
|
|
|
Diamond soon made great friends with an old woman who kept a toyshop,
|
|
for his mother had given him twopence for pocket-money before he left,
|
|
and he had gone into her shop to spend it, and she got talking
|
|
to him. She looked very funny, because she had not got any teeth,
|
|
but Diamond liked her, and went often to her shop, although he had
|
|
nothing to spend there after the twopence was gone.
|
|
|
|
One afternoon he had been wandering rather wearily about the
|
|
streets for some time. It was a hot day, and he felt tired.
|
|
As he passed the toyshop, he stepped in.
|
|
|
|
"Please may I sit down for a minute on this box?" he said,
|
|
thinking the old woman was somewhere in the shop. But he got
|
|
no answer, and sat down without one. Around him were a great many
|
|
toys of all prices, from a penny up to shillings. All at once he
|
|
heard a gentle whirring somewhere amongst them. It made him start
|
|
and look behind him. There were the sails of a windmill going
|
|
round and round almost close to his ear. He thought at first it
|
|
must be one of those toys which are wound up and go with clockwork;
|
|
but no, it was a common penny toy, with the windmill at the end
|
|
of a whistle, and when the whistle blows the windmill goes.
|
|
But the wonder was that there was no one at the whistle end blowing,
|
|
and yet the sails were turning round and round--now faster, now slower,
|
|
now faster again.
|
|
|
|
"What can it mean?" said Diamond, aloud.
|
|
|
|
"It means me," said the tiniest voice he had ever heard.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you, please?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, really, I begin to be ashamed of you," said the voice.
|
|
"I wonder how long it will be before you know me; or how often
|
|
I might take you in before you got sharp enough to suspect me.
|
|
You are as bad as a baby that doesn't know his mother in a new bonnet."
|
|
|
|
"Not quite so bad as that, dear North Wind," said Diamond, "for I
|
|
didn't see you at all, and indeed I don't see you yet, although I
|
|
recognise your voice. Do grow a little, please."
|
|
|
|
"Not a hair's-breadth," said the voice, and it was the smallest
|
|
voice that ever spoke. "What are you doing here?"
|
|
|
|
"I am come to see my aunt. But, please, North Wind, why didn't
|
|
you come back for me in the church that night?"
|
|
|
|
"I did. I carried you safe home. All the time you were dreaming
|
|
about the glass Apostles, you were lying in my arms."
|
|
|
|
"I'm so glad," said Diamond. "I thought that must be it, only I
|
|
wanted to hear you say so. Did you sink the ship, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And drown everybody?"
|
|
|
|
"Not quite. One boat got away with six or seven men in it."
|
|
|
|
"How could the boat swim when the ship couldn't?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course I had some trouble with it. I had to contrive a bit,
|
|
and manage the waves a little. When they're once thoroughly
|
|
waked up, I have a good deal of trouble with them sometimes.
|
|
They're apt to get stupid with tumbling over each other's heads.
|
|
That's when they're fairly at it. However, the boat got to a desert
|
|
island before noon next day."
|
|
|
|
"And what good will come of that?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. I obeyed orders. Good bye."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! stay, North Wind, do stay!" cried Diamond, dismayed to see
|
|
the windmill get slower and slower.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, my dear child?" said North Wind, and the windmill
|
|
began turning again so swiftly that Diamond could scarcely see it.
|
|
"What a big voice you've got! and what a noise you do make with it?
|
|
What is it you want? I have little to do, but that little must
|
|
be done."
|
|
|
|
"I want you to take me to the country at the back of the north wind."
|
|
|
|
"That's not so easy," said North Wind, and was silent for so long
|
|
that Diamond thought she was gone indeed. But after he had quite
|
|
given her up, the voice began again.
|
|
|
|
"I almost wish old Herodotus had held his tongue about it.
|
|
Much he knew of it!"
|
|
|
|
"Why do you wish that, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Because then that clergyman would never have heard of it, and set
|
|
you wanting to go. But we shall see. We shall see. You must go
|
|
home now, my dear, for you don't seem very well, and I'll see what
|
|
can be done for you. Don't wait for me. I've got to break a few
|
|
of old Goody's toys; she's thinking too much of her new stock.
|
|
Two or three will do. There! go now."
|
|
|
|
Diamond rose, quite sorry, and without a word left the shop,
|
|
and went home.
|
|
|
|
It soon appeared that his mother had been right about him,
|
|
for that same afternoon his head began to ache very much, and he
|
|
had to go to bed.
|
|
|
|
He awoke in the middle of the night. The lattice window of his room
|
|
had blown open, and the curtains of his little bed were swinging
|
|
about in the wind.
|
|
|
|
"If that should be North Wind now!" thought Diamond.
|
|
|
|
But the next moment he heard some one closing the window,
|
|
and his aunt came to his bedside. She put her hand on his face,
|
|
and said--
|
|
|
|
"How's your head, dear?"
|
|
|
|
"Better, auntie, I think."
|
|
|
|
"Would you like something to drink?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes! I should, please."
|
|
|
|
So his aunt gave him some lemonade, for she had been used
|
|
to nursing sick people, and Diamond felt very much refreshed,
|
|
and laid his head down again to go very fast asleep, as he thought.
|
|
And so he did, but only to come awake again, as a fresh burst of wind
|
|
blew the lattice open a second time. The same moment he found
|
|
himself in a cloud of North Wind's hair, with her beautiful face,
|
|
set in it like a moon, bending over him.
|
|
|
|
"Quick, Diamond!" she said. "I have found such a chance!"
|
|
|
|
"But I'm not well," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I know that, but you will be better for a little fresh air.
|
|
You shall have plenty of that."
|
|
|
|
"You want me to go, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do. It won't hurt you."
|
|
|
|
"Very well," said Diamond; and getting out of the bed-clothes, he
|
|
jumped into North Wind's arms.
|
|
|
|
"We must make haste before your aunt comes," said she, as she
|
|
glided out of the open lattice and left it swinging.
|
|
|
|
The moment Diamond felt her arms fold around him he began to
|
|
feel better. It was a moonless night, and very dark, with glimpses
|
|
of stars when the clouds parted.
|
|
|
|
"I used to dash the waves about here," said North Wind, "where cows
|
|
and sheep are feeding now; but we shall soon get to them.
|
|
There they are."
|
|
|
|
And Diamond, looking down, saw the white glimmer of breaking water
|
|
far below him.
|
|
|
|
"You see, Diamond," said North Wind, "it is very difficult for me
|
|
to get you to the back of the north wind, for that country lies
|
|
in the very north itself, and of course I can't blow northwards."
|
|
|
|
"Why not?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You little silly!" said North Wind. "Don't you see that if I
|
|
were to blow northwards I should be South Wind, and that is as much
|
|
as to say that one person could be two persons?"
|
|
|
|
"But how can you ever get home at all, then?"
|
|
|
|
"You are quite right--that is my home, though I never get farther than
|
|
the outer door. I sit on the doorstep, and hear the voices inside.
|
|
I am nobody there, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"I'm very sorry."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"That you should be nobody."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I don't mind it. Dear little man! you will be very glad some
|
|
day to be nobody yourself. But you can't understand that now,
|
|
and you had better not try; for if you do, you will be certain to go
|
|
fancying some egregious nonsense, and making yourself miserable
|
|
about it."
|
|
|
|
"Then I won't," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"There's a good boy. It will all come in good time."
|
|
|
|
"But you haven't told me how you get to the doorstep, you know."
|
|
|
|
"It is easy enough for me. I have only to consent to be nobody,
|
|
and there I am. I draw into myself and there I am on the doorstep.
|
|
But you can easily see, or you have less sense than I think,
|
|
that to drag you, you heavy thing, along with me, would take centuries,
|
|
and I could not give the time to it."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I'm so sorry!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What for now, pet?"
|
|
|
|
"That I'm so heavy for you. I would be lighter if I could, but I
|
|
don't know how."
|
|
|
|
"You silly darling! Why, I could toss you a hundred miles from me
|
|
if I liked. It is only when I am going home that I shall find
|
|
you heavy."
|
|
|
|
"Then you are going home with me?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course. Did I not come to fetch you just for that?"
|
|
|
|
"But all this time you must be going southwards."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Of course I am."
|
|
|
|
"How can you be taking me northwards, then?"
|
|
|
|
"A very sensible question. But you shall see. I will get
|
|
rid of a few of these clouds--only they do come up so fast!
|
|
It's like trying to blow a brook dry. There! What do you see now?"
|
|
|
|
"I think I see a little boat, away there, down below."
|
|
|
|
"A little boat, indeed! Well! She's a yacht of two hundred tons;
|
|
and the captain of it is a friend of mine; for he is a man of
|
|
good sense, and can sail his craft well. I've helped him many
|
|
a time when he little thought it. I've heard him grumbling at me,
|
|
when I was doing the very best I could for him. Why, I've carried
|
|
him eighty miles a day, again and again, right north."
|
|
|
|
"He must have dodged for that," said Diamond, who had been watching
|
|
the vessels, and had seen that they went other ways than the wind blew.
|
|
|
|
"Of course he must. But don't you see, it was the best I could do?
|
|
I couldn't be South Wind. And besides it gave him a share in
|
|
the business. It is not good at all--mind that, Diamond--to do
|
|
everything for those you love, and not give them a share in the doing.
|
|
It's not kind. It's making too much of yourself, my child.
|
|
If I had been South Wind, he would only have smoked his pipe all day,
|
|
and made himself stupid."
|
|
|
|
"But how could he be a man of sense and grumble at you when you
|
|
were doing your best for him?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! you must make allowances," said North Wind, "or you will never
|
|
do justice to anybody.--You do understand, then, that a captain
|
|
may sail north----"
|
|
|
|
"In spite of a north wind--yes," supplemented Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Now, I do think you must be stupid, my, dear" said North Wind.
|
|
"Suppose the north wind did not blow where would he be then?"
|
|
|
|
"Why then the south wind would carry him."
|
|
|
|
"So you think that when the north wind stops the south wind blows.
|
|
Nonsense. If I didn't blow, the captain couldn't sail his eighty
|
|
miles a day. No doubt South Wind would carry him faster, but South
|
|
Wind is sitting on her doorstep then, and if I stopped there would
|
|
be a dead calm. So you are all wrong to say he can sail north
|
|
in spite of me; he sails north by my help, and my help alone.
|
|
You see that, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do, North Wind. I am stupid, but I don't want to be stupid."
|
|
|
|
"Good boy! I am going to blow you north in that little craft, one of
|
|
the finest that ever sailed the sea. Here we are, right over it.
|
|
I shall be blowing against you; you will be sailing against me;
|
|
and all will be just as we want it. The captain won't get on
|
|
so fast as he would like, but he will get on, and so shall we.
|
|
I'm just going to put you on board. Do you see in front of the tiller--
|
|
that thing the man is working, now to one side, now to the other--
|
|
a round thing like the top of a drum?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Below that is where they keep their spare sails, and some stores
|
|
of that sort. I am going to blow that cover off. The same moment
|
|
I will drop you on deck, and you must tumble in. Don't be afraid,
|
|
it is of no depth, and you will fall on sail-cloth. You will find it
|
|
nice and warm and dry-only dark; and you will know I am near you by
|
|
every roll and pitch of the vessel. Coil yourself up and go to sleep.
|
|
The yacht shall be my cradle and you shall be my baby."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, dear North Wind. I am not a bit afraid," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
In a moment they were on a level with the bulwarks, and North Wind
|
|
sent the hatch of the after-store rattling away over the deck
|
|
to leeward. The next, Diamond found himself in the dark, for he
|
|
had tumbled through the hole as North Wind had told him, and the
|
|
cover was replaced over his head. Away he went rolling to leeward,
|
|
for the wind began all at once to blow hard. He heard the call
|
|
of the captain, and the loud trampling of the men over his head,
|
|
as they hauled at the main sheet to get the boom on board that they
|
|
might take in a reef in the mainsail. Diamond felt about until
|
|
he had found what seemed the most comfortable place, and there he
|
|
snuggled down and lay.
|
|
|
|
Hours after hours, a great many of them, went by; and still
|
|
Diamond lay there. He never felt in the least tired or impatient,
|
|
for a strange pleasure filled his heart. The straining of the masts,
|
|
the creaking of the boom, the singing of the ropes, the banging
|
|
of the blocks as they put the vessel about, all fell in with the
|
|
roaring of the wind above, the surge of the waves past her sides,
|
|
and the thud with which every now and then one would strike her;
|
|
while through it all Diamond could hear the gurgling, rippling,
|
|
talking flow of the water against her planks, as she slipped through it,
|
|
lying now on this side, now on that--like a subdued air running
|
|
through the grand music his North Wind was making about him to keep
|
|
him from tiring as they sped on towards the country at the back
|
|
of her doorstep.
|
|
|
|
How long this lasted Diamond had no idea. He seemed to fall
|
|
asleep sometimes, only through the sleep he heard the sounds going on.
|
|
At length the weather seemed to get worse. The confusion and
|
|
trampling of feet grew more frequent over his head; the vessel lay
|
|
over more and more on her side, and went roaring through the waves,
|
|
which banged and thumped at her as if in anger. All at once arose
|
|
a terrible uproar. The hatch was blown off; a cold fierce wind
|
|
swept in upon him; and a long arm came with it which laid hold
|
|
of him and lifted him out. The same moment he saw the little vessel
|
|
far below him righting herself. She had taken in all her sails
|
|
and lay now tossing on the waves like a sea-bird with folded wings.
|
|
A short distance to the south lay a much larger vessel, with two
|
|
or three sails set, and towards it North Wind was carrying Diamond.
|
|
It was a German ship, on its way to the North Pole.
|
|
|
|
"That vessel down there will give us a lift now," said North Wind;
|
|
"and after that I must do the best I can."
|
|
|
|
She managed to hide him amongst the flags of the big ship,
|
|
which were all snugly stowed away, and on and on they sped
|
|
towards the north. At length one night she whispered in his ear,
|
|
"Come on deck, Diamond;" and he got up at once and crept on deck.
|
|
Everything looked very strange. Here and there on all sides were
|
|
huge masses of floating ice, looking like cathedrals, and castles,
|
|
and crags, while away beyond was a blue sea.
|
|
|
|
"Is the sun rising or setting?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Neither or both, which you please. I can hardly tell which myself.
|
|
If he is setting now, he will be rising the next moment."
|
|
|
|
"What a strange light it is!" said Diamond. "I have heard
|
|
that the sun doesn't go to bed all the summer in these parts.
|
|
Miss Coleman told me that. I suppose he feels very sleepy,
|
|
and that is why the light he sends out looks so like a dream."
|
|
|
|
"That will account for it well enough for all practical purposes,"
|
|
said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
Some of the icebergs were drifting northwards; one was passing
|
|
very near the ship. North Wind seized Diamond, and with a single
|
|
bound lighted on one of them--a huge thing, with sharp pinnacles and
|
|
great clefts. The same instant a wind began to blow from the south.
|
|
North Wind hurried Diamond down the north side of the iceberg,
|
|
stepping by its jags and splintering; for this berg had never got
|
|
far enough south to be melted and smoothed by the summer sun.
|
|
She brought him to a cave near the water, where she entered, and,
|
|
letting Diamond go, sat down as if weary on a ledge of ice.
|
|
|
|
Diamond seated himself on the other side, and for a while was
|
|
enraptured with the colour of the air inside the cave. It was a deep,
|
|
dazzling, lovely blue, deeper than the deepest blue of the sky.
|
|
The blue seemed to be in constant motion, like the blackness when
|
|
you press your eyeballs with your fingers, boiling and sparkling.
|
|
But when he looked across to North Wind he was frightened;
|
|
her face was worn and livid.
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter with you, dear North Wind?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing much. I feel very faint. But you mustn't mind it,
|
|
for I can bear it quite well. South Wind always blows me faint.
|
|
If it were not for the cool of the thick ice between me and her,
|
|
I should faint altogether. Indeed, as it is, I fear I must vanish."
|
|
|
|
Diamond stared at her in terror, for he saw that her form and face
|
|
were growing, not small, but transparent, like something dissolving,
|
|
not in water, but in light. He could see the side of the blue cave
|
|
through her very heart. And she melted away till all that was left
|
|
was a pale face, like the moon in the morning, with two great lucid
|
|
eyes in it.
|
|
|
|
"I am going, Diamond," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Does it hurt you?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"It's very uncomfortable," she answered; "but I don't mind it,
|
|
for I shall come all right again before long. I thought I should
|
|
be able to go with you all the way, but I cannot. You must not be
|
|
frightened though. Just go straight on, and you will come all right.
|
|
You'll find me on the doorstep."
|
|
|
|
As she spoke, her face too faded quite away, only Diamond
|
|
thought he could still see her eyes shining through the blue.
|
|
When he went closer, however, he found that what he thought her
|
|
eyes were only two hollows in the ice. North Wind was quite gone;
|
|
and Diamond would have cried, if he had not trusted her so thoroughly.
|
|
So he sat still in the blue air of the cavern listening to the wash
|
|
and ripple of the water all about the base of the iceberg, as it
|
|
sped on and on into the open sea northwards. It was an excellent
|
|
craft to go with the current, for there was twice as much of it
|
|
below water as above. But a light south wind was blowing too,
|
|
and so it went fast.
|
|
|
|
After a little while Diamond went out and sat on the edge of his
|
|
floating island, and looked down into the ocean beneath him.
|
|
The white sides of the berg reflected so much light below the water,
|
|
that he could see far down into the green abyss. Sometimes he
|
|
fancied he saw the eyes of North Wind looking up at him from below,
|
|
but the fancy never lasted beyond the moment of its birth. And the time
|
|
passed he did not know how, for he felt as if he were in a dream.
|
|
When he got tired of the green water, he went into the blue cave;
|
|
and when he got tired of the blue cave he went out and gazed all
|
|
about him on the blue sea, ever sparkling in the sun, which kept
|
|
wheeling about the sky, never going below the horizon. But he
|
|
chiefly gazed northwards, to see whether any land were appearing.
|
|
All this time he never wanted to eat. He broke off little bits
|
|
of the berg now and then and sucked them, and he thought them
|
|
very nice.
|
|
|
|
At length, one time he came out of his cave, he spied far off on
|
|
the horizon, a shining peak that rose into the sky like the top
|
|
of some tremendous iceberg; and his vessel was bearing him straight
|
|
towards it. As it went on the peak rose and rose higher and higher
|
|
above the horizon; and other peaks rose after it, with sharp edges
|
|
and jagged ridges connecting them. Diamond thought this must be
|
|
the place he was going to; and he was right; for the mountains rose
|
|
and rose, till he saw the line of the coast at their feet and at
|
|
length the iceberg drove into a little bay, all around which were
|
|
lofty precipices with snow on their tops, and streaks of ice down
|
|
their sides. The berg floated slowly up to a projecting rock.
|
|
Diamond stepped on shore, and without looking behind him began to follow
|
|
a natural path which led windingly towards the top of the precipice.
|
|
|
|
When he reached it, he found himself on a broad table of ice,
|
|
along which he could walk without much difficulty. Before him,
|
|
at a considerable distance, rose a lofty ridge of ice, which shot up
|
|
into fantastic pinnacles and towers and battlements. The air was
|
|
very cold, and seemed somehow dead, for there was not the slightest
|
|
breath of wind.
|
|
|
|
In the centre of the ridge before him appeared a gap like the opening
|
|
of a valley. But as he walked towards it, gazing, and wondering
|
|
whether that could be the way he had to take, he saw that what had
|
|
appeared a gap was the form of a woman seated against the ice
|
|
front of the ridge, leaning forwards with her hands in her lap,
|
|
and her hair hanging down to the ground.
|
|
|
|
"It is North Wind on her doorstep," said Diamond joyfully,
|
|
and hurried on.
|
|
|
|
He soon came up to the place, and there the form sat, like one of
|
|
the great figures at the door of an Egyptian temple, motionless,
|
|
with drooping arms and head. Then Diamond grew frightened,
|
|
because she did not move nor speak. He was sure it was North Wind,
|
|
but he thought she must be dead at last. Her face was white as
|
|
the snow, her eyes were blue as the air in the ice-cave, and her
|
|
hair hung down straight, like icicles. She had on a greenish robe,
|
|
like the colour in the hollows of a glacier seen from far off.
|
|
|
|
He stood up before her, and gazed fearfully into her face for a few
|
|
minutes before he ventured to speak. At length, with a great effort
|
|
and a trembling voice, he faltered out--
|
|
|
|
"North Wind!"
|
|
|
|
"Well, child?" said the form, without lifting its head.
|
|
|
|
"Are you ill, dear North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"No. I am waiting."
|
|
|
|
"What for?"
|
|
|
|
"Till I'm wanted."
|
|
|
|
"You don't care for me any more," said Diamond, almost crying now.
|
|
|
|
"Yes I do. Only I can't show it. All my love is down at the bottom
|
|
of my heart. But I feel it bubbling there."
|
|
|
|
"What do you want me to do next, dear North Wind?" said Diamond,
|
|
wishing to show his love by being obedient.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want to do yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"I want to go into the country at your back."
|
|
|
|
"Then you must go through me."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean."
|
|
|
|
"I mean just what I say. You must walk on as if I were an open door,
|
|
and go right through me."
|
|
|
|
"But that will hurt you."
|
|
|
|
"Not in the least. It will hurt you, though."
|
|
|
|
"I don't mind that, if you tell me to do it."
|
|
|
|
"Do it," said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
Diamond walked towards her instantly. When he reached her knees,
|
|
he put out his hand to lay it on her, but nothing was there save
|
|
an intense cold. He walked on. Then all grew white about him;
|
|
and the cold stung him like fire. He walked on still, groping through
|
|
the whiteness. It thickened about him. At last, it got into his heart,
|
|
and he lost all sense. I would say that he fainted--only whereas
|
|
in common faints all grows black about you, he felt swallowed up
|
|
in whiteness. It was when he reached North Wind's heart that he
|
|
fainted and fell. But as he fell, he rolled over the threshold,
|
|
and it was thus that Diamond got to the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X
|
|
|
|
AT THE BACK OF THE NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
I HAVE now come to the most difficult part of my story. And why?
|
|
Because I do not know enough about it. And why should I not know
|
|
as much about this part as about any other part? For of course
|
|
I could know nothing about the story except Diamond had told it;
|
|
and why should not Diamond tell about the country at the back of
|
|
the north wind, as well as about his adventures in getting there?
|
|
Because, when he came back, he had forgotten a great deal,
|
|
and what he did remember was very hard to tell. Things there
|
|
are so different from things here! The people there do not speak
|
|
the same language for one thing. Indeed, Diamond insisted that
|
|
there they do not speak at all. I do not think he was right,
|
|
but it may well have appeared so to Diamond. The fact is, we have
|
|
different reports of the place from the most trustworthy people.
|
|
Therefore we are bound to believe that it appears somewhat different
|
|
to different people. All, however, agree in a general way about it.
|
|
|
|
I will tell you something of what two very different people have reported,
|
|
both of whom knew more about it, I believe, than Herodotus.
|
|
One of them speaks from his own experience, for he visited the country;
|
|
the other from the testimony of a young peasant girl who came back
|
|
from it for a month's visit to her friends. The former was a great
|
|
Italian of noble family, who died more than five hundred years ago;
|
|
the latter a Scotch shepherd who died not forty years ago.
|
|
|
|
The Italian, then, informs us that he had to enter that country
|
|
through a fire so hot that he would have thrown himself into
|
|
boiling glass to cool himself. This was not Diamond's experience,
|
|
but then Durante--that was the name of the Italian, and it means Lasting,
|
|
for his books will last as long as there are enough men in the world
|
|
worthy of having them--Durante was an elderly man, and Diamond was
|
|
a little boy, and so their experience must be a little different.
|
|
The peasant girl, on the other hand, fell fast asleep in a wood,
|
|
and woke in the same country.
|
|
|
|
In describing it, Durante says that the ground everywhere smelt sweetly,
|
|
and that a gentle, even-tempered wind, which never blew faster
|
|
or slower, breathed in his face as he went, making all the leaves
|
|
point one way, not so as to disturb the birds in the tops of
|
|
the trees, but, on the contrary, sounding a bass to their song.
|
|
He describes also a little river which was so full that its little waves,
|
|
as it hurried along, bent the grass, full of red and yellow flowers,
|
|
through which it flowed. He says that the purest stream in the world
|
|
beside this one would look as if it were mixed with something that did
|
|
not belong to it, even although it was flowing ever in the brown
|
|
shadow of the trees, and neither sun nor moon could shine upon it.
|
|
He seems to imply that it is always the month of May in that country.
|
|
It would be out of place to describe here the wonderful sights he saw,
|
|
for the music of them is in another key from that of this story,
|
|
and I shall therefore only add from the account of this traveller,
|
|
that the people there are so free and so just and so healthy,
|
|
that every one of them has a crown like a king and a mitre like
|
|
a priest.
|
|
|
|
The peasant girl--Kilmeny was her name--could not report such grand
|
|
things as Durante, for, as the shepherd says, telling her story
|
|
as I tell Diamond's--
|
|
|
|
"Kilmeny had been she knew not where,
|
|
And Kilmeny had seen what she could not declare;
|
|
Kilmeny had been where the cock never crew,
|
|
Where the rain never fell, and the wind never blew.
|
|
But it seemed as the harp of the sky had rung,
|
|
And the airs of heaven played round her tongue,
|
|
When she spoke of the lovely forms she had seen,
|
|
And a land where sin had never been;
|
|
A land of love and a land of light,
|
|
Withouten sun, or moon, or night;
|
|
Where the river swayed a living stream,
|
|
And the light a pure and cloudless beam:
|
|
The land of vision it would seem,
|
|
And still an everlasting dream."
|
|
|
|
|
|
The last two lines are the shepherd's own remark, and a matter
|
|
of opinion. But it is clear, I think, that Kilmeny must have described
|
|
the same country as Durante saw, though, not having his experience,
|
|
she could neither understand nor describe it so well.
|
|
|
|
Now I must give you such fragments of recollection as Diamond
|
|
was able to bring back with him.
|
|
|
|
When he came to himself after he fell, he found himself at the back
|
|
of the north wind. North Wind herself was nowhere to be seen.
|
|
Neither was there a vestige of snow or of ice within sight.
|
|
The sun too had vanished; but that was no matter, for there was
|
|
plenty of a certain still rayless light. Where it came from he
|
|
never found out; but he thought it belonged to the country itself.
|
|
Sometimes he thought it came out of the flowers, which were very bright,
|
|
but had no strong colour. He said the river--for all agree that there
|
|
is a river there--flowed not only through, but over grass: its channel,
|
|
instead of being rock, stones, pebbles, sand, or anything else,
|
|
was of pure meadow grass, not over long. He insisted that if it
|
|
did not sing tunes in people's ears, it sung tunes in their heads,
|
|
in proof of which I may mention that, in the troubles which followed,
|
|
Diamond was often heard singing; and when asked what he was singing,
|
|
would answer, "One of the tunes the river at the back of the north
|
|
wind sung." And I may as well say at once that Diamond never told
|
|
these things to any one but--no, I had better not say who it was;
|
|
but whoever it was told me, and I thought it would be well to write them
|
|
for my child-readers.
|
|
|
|
He could not say he was very happy there, for he had neither
|
|
his father nor mother with him, but he felt so still and quiet
|
|
and patient and contented, that, as far as the mere feeling went,
|
|
it was something better than mere happiness. Nothing went wrong
|
|
at the back of the north wind. Neither was anything quite right,
|
|
he thought. Only everything was going to be right some day.
|
|
His account disagreed with that of Durante, and agreed with that
|
|
of Kilmeny, in this, that he protested there was no wind there at all.
|
|
I fancy he missed it. At all events we could not do without wind.
|
|
It all depends on how big our lungs are whether the wind is too strong
|
|
for us or not.
|
|
|
|
When the person he told about it asked him whether he saw anybody he
|
|
knew there, he answered, "Only a little girl belonging to the gardener,
|
|
who thought he had lost her, but was quite mistaken, for there she
|
|
was safe enough, and was to come back some day, as I came back,
|
|
if they would only wait."
|
|
|
|
"Did you talk to her, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"No. Nobody talks there. They only look at each other,
|
|
and understand everything."
|
|
|
|
"Is it cold there?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Is it hot?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"What is it then?"
|
|
|
|
"You never think about such things there."
|
|
|
|
"What a queer place it must be!"
|
|
|
|
"It's a very good place."
|
|
|
|
"Do you want to go back again?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I don't think I have left it; I feel it here, somewhere."
|
|
|
|
"Did the people there look pleased?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes--quite pleased, only a little sad."
|
|
|
|
"Then they didn't look glad?"
|
|
|
|
"They looked as if they were waiting to be gladder some day."
|
|
|
|
This was how Diamond used to answer questions about that country.
|
|
And now I will take up the story again, and tell you how he got back
|
|
to this country.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI
|
|
|
|
HOW DIAMOND GOT HOME AGAIN
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHEN one at the back of the north wind wanted to know how things
|
|
were going with any one he loved, he had to go to a certain tree,
|
|
climb the stem, and sit down in the branches. In a few minutes,
|
|
if he kept very still, he would see something at least of what was
|
|
going on with the people he loved.
|
|
|
|
One day when Diamond was sitting in this tree, he began to long very
|
|
much to get home again, and no wonder, for he saw his mother crying.
|
|
Durante says that the people there may always follow their wishes,
|
|
because they never wish but what is good. Diamond's wish was to
|
|
get home, and he would fain follow his wish.
|
|
|
|
But how was he to set about it? If he could only see North Wind!
|
|
But the moment he had got to her back, she was gone altogether from
|
|
his sight. He had never seen her back. She might be sitting on
|
|
her doorstep still, looking southwards, and waiting, white and thin
|
|
and blue-eyed, until she was wanted. Or she might have again become
|
|
a mighty creature, with power to do that which was demanded of her,
|
|
and gone far away upon many missions. She must be somewhere, however.
|
|
He could not go home without her, and therefore he must find her.
|
|
She could never have intended to leave him always away from his mother.
|
|
If there had been any danger of that, she would have told him,
|
|
and given him his choice about going. For North Wind was right honest.
|
|
How to find North Wind, therefore, occupied all his thoughts.
|
|
|
|
In his anxiety about his mother, he used to climb the tree every day,
|
|
and sit in its branches. However many of the dwellers there did so,
|
|
they never incommoded one another; for the moment one got into
|
|
the tree, he became invisible to every one else; and it was such
|
|
a wide-spreading tree that there was room for every one of the
|
|
people of the country in it, without the least interference with
|
|
each other. Sometimes, on getting down, two of them would meet
|
|
at the root, and then they would smile to each other more sweetly
|
|
than at any other time, as much as to say, "Ah, you've been up there too!"
|
|
|
|
One day he was sitting on one of the outer branches of the tree,
|
|
looking southwards after his home. Far away was a blue shining sea,
|
|
dotted with gleaming and sparkling specks of white. Those were
|
|
the icebergs. Nearer he saw a great range of snow-capped mountains,
|
|
and down below him the lovely meadow-grass of the country, with the
|
|
stream flowing and flowing through it, away towards the sea.
|
|
As he looked he began to wonder, for the whole country lay beneath him
|
|
like a map, and that which was near him looked just as small as that
|
|
which he knew to be miles away. The ridge of ice which encircled it
|
|
appeared but a few yards off, and no larger than the row of pebbles
|
|
with which a child will mark out the boundaries of the kingdom he
|
|
has appropriated on the sea-shore. He thought he could distinguish
|
|
the vapoury form of North Wind, seated as he had left her, on the
|
|
other side. Hastily he descended the tree, and to his amazement
|
|
found that the map or model of the country still lay at his feet.
|
|
He stood in it. With one stride he had crossed the river;
|
|
with another he had reached the ridge of ice; with the third he
|
|
stepped over its peaks, and sank wearily down at North Wind's knees.
|
|
For there she sat on her doorstep. The peaks of the great ridge
|
|
of ice were as lofty as ever behind her, and the country at her back
|
|
had vanished from Diamond's view.
|
|
|
|
North Wind was as still as Diamond had left her. Her pale face
|
|
was white as the snow, and her motionless eyes were as blue
|
|
as the caverns in the ice. But the instant Diamond touched her,
|
|
her face began to change like that of one waking from sleep.
|
|
Light began to glimmer from the blue of her eyes.
|
|
|
|
A moment more, and she laid her hand on Diamond's head, and began
|
|
playing with his hair. Diamond took hold of her hand, and laid
|
|
his face to it. She gave a little start.
|
|
|
|
"How very alive you are, child!" she murmured. "Come nearer to me."
|
|
|
|
By the help of the stones all around he clambered up beside her,
|
|
and laid himself against her bosom. She gave a great sigh,
|
|
slowly lifted her arms, and slowly folded them about him,
|
|
until she clasped him close. Yet a moment, and she roused herself,
|
|
and came quite awake; and the cold of her bosom, which had pierced
|
|
Diamond's bones, vanished.
|
|
|
|
"Have you been sitting here ever since I went through you,
|
|
dear North Wind?" asked Diamond, stroking her hand.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she answered, looking at him with her old kindness.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't you very tired?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I've often had to sit longer. Do you know how long you
|
|
have been?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! years and years," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You have just been seven days," returned North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"I thought I had been a hundred years!" exclaimed Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I daresay," replied North Wind. "You've been away
|
|
from here seven days; but how long you may have been in
|
|
there is quite another thing. Behind my back and before
|
|
my face things are so different! They don't go at all by the same rule."
|
|
|
|
"I'm very glad," said Diamond, after thinking a while.
|
|
|
|
"Why?" asked North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Because I've been such a long time there, and such a little while away
|
|
from mother. Why, she won't be expecting me home from Sandwich yet!"
|
|
|
|
"No. But we mustn't talk any longer. I've got my orders now,
|
|
and we must be off in a few minutes."
|
|
|
|
Next moment Diamond found himself sitting alone on the rock.
|
|
North Wind had vanished. A creature like a great humble-bee or
|
|
cockchafer flew past his face; but it could be neither, for there
|
|
were no insects amongst the ice. It passed him again and again,
|
|
flying in circles around him, and he concluded that it must be
|
|
North Wind herself, no bigger than Tom Thumb when his mother put
|
|
him in the nutshell lined with flannel. But she was no longer
|
|
vapoury and thin. She was solid, although tiny. A moment more,
|
|
and she perched on his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"Come along, Diamond," she said in his ear, in the smallest and highest
|
|
of treble voices; "it is time we were setting out for Sandwich."
|
|
|
|
Diamond could just see her, by turning his head towards
|
|
his shoulder as far as he could, but only with one eye,
|
|
for his nose came between her and the other.
|
|
|
|
"Won't you take me in your arms and carry me?" he said in a whisper,
|
|
for he knew she did not like a loud voice when she was small.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! you ungrateful boy," returned North Wind, smiling "how dare
|
|
you make game of me? Yes, I will carry you, but you shall walk
|
|
a bit for your impertinence first. Come along."
|
|
|
|
She jumped from his shoulder, but when Diamond looked for her upon
|
|
the ground, he could see nothing but a little spider with long legs
|
|
that made its way over the ice towards the south. It ran very fast
|
|
indeed for a spider, but Diamond ran a long way before it, and then
|
|
waited for it. It was up with him sooner than he had expected,
|
|
however, and it had grown a good deal. And the spider grew and grew
|
|
and went faster and faster, till all at once Diamond discovered
|
|
that it was not a spider, but a weasel; and away glided the weasel,
|
|
and away went Diamond after it, and it took all the run there was
|
|
in him to keep up with the weasel. And the weasel grew, and grew,
|
|
and grew, till all at once Diamond saw that the weasel was not
|
|
a weasel but a cat. And away went the cat, and Diamond after it.
|
|
And when he had run half a mile, he found the cat waiting for him,
|
|
sitting up and washing her face not to lose time. And away went
|
|
the cat again, and Diamond after it. But the next time he came
|
|
up with the cat, the cat was not a cat, but a hunting-leopard.
|
|
And the hunting-leopard grew to a jaguar, all covered with spots
|
|
like eyes. And the jaguar grew to a Bengal tiger. And at none
|
|
of them was Diamond afraid, for he had been at North Wind's back,
|
|
and he could be afraid of her no longer whatever she did or grew.
|
|
And the tiger flew over the snow in a straight line for the south,
|
|
growing less and less to Diamond's eyes till it was only a black
|
|
speck upon the whiteness; and then it vanished altogether.
|
|
And now Diamond felt that he would rather not run any farther,
|
|
and that the ice had got very rough. Besides, he was near the
|
|
precipices that bounded the sea, so he slackened his pace to a walk,
|
|
saying aloud to himself:
|
|
|
|
"When North Wind has punished me enough for making game of her,
|
|
she will come back to me; I know she will, for I can't go much
|
|
farther without her."
|
|
|
|
"You dear boy! It was only in fun. Here I am!" said North Wind's
|
|
voice behind him.
|
|
|
|
Diamond turned, and saw her as he liked best to see her,
|
|
standing beside him, a tall lady.
|
|
|
|
"Where's the tiger?" he asked, for he knew all the creatures from
|
|
a picture book that Miss Coleman had given him. "But, of course,"
|
|
he added, "you were the tiger. I was puzzled and forgot. I saw
|
|
it such a long way off before me, and there you were behind me.
|
|
It's so odd, you know."
|
|
|
|
"It must look very odd to you, Diamond: I see that. But it
|
|
is no more odd to me than to break an old pine in two."
|
|
|
|
"Well, that's odd enough," remarked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"So it is! I forgot. Well, none of these things are odder to me
|
|
than it is to you to eat bread and butter."
|
|
|
|
"Well, that's odd too, when I think of it," persisted Diamond.
|
|
"I should just like a slice of bread and butter! I'm afraid to say
|
|
how long it is--how long it seems to me, that is--since I had anything
|
|
to eat."
|
|
|
|
"Come then," said North Wind, stooping and holding out her arms.
|
|
"You shall have some bread and butter very soon. I am glad to find
|
|
you want some."
|
|
|
|
Diamond held up his arms to meet hers, and was safe upon her bosom.
|
|
North Wind bounded into the air. Her tresses began to lift and
|
|
rise and spread and stream and flow and flutter; and with a roar
|
|
from her hair and an answering roar from one of the great glaciers
|
|
beside them, whose slow torrent tumbled two or three icebergs
|
|
at once into the waves at their feet, North Wind and Diamond went
|
|
flying southwards.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII
|
|
|
|
WHO MET DIAMOND AT SANDWICH
|
|
|
|
|
|
As THEY flew, so fast they went that the sea slid away from under
|
|
them like a great web of shot silk, blue shot with grey, and green
|
|
shot with purple. They went so fast that the stars themselves
|
|
appeared to sail away past them overhead, "like golden boats,"
|
|
on a blue sea turned upside down. And they went so fast that Diamond
|
|
himself went the other way as fast--I mean he went fast asleep
|
|
in North Wind's arms.
|
|
|
|
When he woke, a face was bending over him; but it was not North Wind's;
|
|
it was his mother's. He put out his arms to her, and she clasped him
|
|
to her bosom and burst out crying. Diamond kissed her again and again
|
|
to make her stop. Perhaps kissing is the best thing for crying,
|
|
but it will not always stop it.
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter, mother?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Diamond, my darling! you have been so ill!" she sobbed.
|
|
|
|
"No, mother dear. I've only been at the back of the north wind,"
|
|
returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I thought you were dead," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
But that moment the doctor came in.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! there!" said the doctor with gentle cheerfulness; "we're better
|
|
to-day, I see."
|
|
|
|
Then he drew the mother aside, and told her not to talk to Diamond,
|
|
or to mind what he might say; for he must be kept as quiet as possible.
|
|
And indeed Diamond was not much inclined to talk, for he felt
|
|
very strange and weak, which was little wonder, seeing that all
|
|
the time he had been away he had only sucked a few lumps of ice,
|
|
and there could not be much nourishment in them.
|
|
|
|
Now while he is lying there, getting strong again with chicken
|
|
broth and other nice things, I will tell my readers what had been
|
|
taking place at his home, for they ought to be told it.
|
|
|
|
They may have forgotten that Miss Coleman was in a very poor
|
|
state of health. Now there were three reasons for this.
|
|
In the first place, her lungs were not strong. In the second place,
|
|
there was a gentleman somewhere who had not behaved very well to her.
|
|
In the third place, she had not anything particular to do.
|
|
These three nots together are enough to make a lady very ill indeed.
|
|
Of course she could not help the first cause; but if the other two
|
|
causes had not existed, that would have been of little consequence;
|
|
she would only have to be a little careful. The second she could not
|
|
help quite; but if she had had anything to do, and had done it well,
|
|
it would have been very difficult for any man to behave badly to her.
|
|
And for this third cause of her illness, if she had had anything
|
|
to do that was worth doing, she might have borne his bad behaviour
|
|
so that even that would not have made her ill. It is not always easy,
|
|
I confess, to find something to do that is worth doing, but the
|
|
most difficult things are constantly being done, and she might
|
|
have found something if she had tried. Her fault lay in this,
|
|
that she had not tried. But, to be sure, her father and mother
|
|
were to blame that they had never set her going. Only then again,
|
|
nobody had told her father and mother that they ought to set her going
|
|
in that direction. So as none of them would find it out of themselves,
|
|
North Wind had to teach them.
|
|
|
|
We know that North Wind was very busy that night on which she
|
|
left Diamond in the cathedral. She had in a sense been blowing
|
|
through and through the Colemans' house the whole of the night.
|
|
First, Miss Coleman's maid had left a chink of her mistress's
|
|
window open, thinking she had shut it, and North Wind had wound
|
|
a few of her hairs round the lady's throat. She was considerably
|
|
worse the next morning. Again, the ship which North Wind had sunk
|
|
that very night belonged to Mr. Coleman. Nor will my readers
|
|
understand what a heavy loss this was to him until I have informed
|
|
them that he had been getting poorer and poorer for some time.
|
|
He was not so successful in his speculations as he had been, for he
|
|
speculated a great deal more than was right, and it was time he
|
|
should be pulled up. It is a hard thing for a rich man to grow poor;
|
|
but it is an awful thing for him to grow dishonest, and some kinds
|
|
of speculation lead a man deep into dishonesty before he thinks
|
|
what he is about. Poverty will not make a man worthless--he may be
|
|
worth a great deal more when he is poor than he was when he was rich;
|
|
but dishonesty goes very far indeed to make a man of no value--
|
|
a thing to be thrown out in the dust-hole of the creation,
|
|
like a bit of a broken basin, or a dirty rag. So North Wind had
|
|
to look after Mr. Coleman, and try to make an honest man of him.
|
|
So she sank the ship which was his last venture, and he was what
|
|
himself and his wife and the world called ruined.
|
|
|
|
Nor was this all yet. For on board that vessel Miss Coleman's
|
|
lover was a passenger; and when the news came that the vessel had
|
|
gone down, and that all on board had perished, we may be sure she
|
|
did not think the loss of their fine house and garden and furniture
|
|
the greatest misfortune in the world.
|
|
|
|
Of course, the trouble did not end with Mr. Coleman and his family.
|
|
Nobody can suffer alone. When the cause of suffering is most deeply
|
|
hidden in the heart, and nobody knows anything about it but the
|
|
man himself, he must be a great and a good man indeed, such as few
|
|
of us have known, if the pain inside him does not make him behave
|
|
so as to cause all about him to be more or less uncomfortable.
|
|
But when a man brings money-troubles on himself by making haste
|
|
to be rich, then most of the people he has to do with must suffer
|
|
in the same way with himself. The elm-tree which North Wind blew
|
|
down that very night, as if small and great trials were to be
|
|
gathered in one heap, crushed Miss Coleman's pretty summer-house:
|
|
just so the fall of Mr. Coleman crushed the little family that
|
|
lived over his coach-house and stable. Before Diamond was well
|
|
enough to be taken home, there was no home for him to go to.
|
|
Mr. Coleman--or his creditors, for I do not know the particulars--
|
|
had sold house, carriage, horses, furniture, and everything.
|
|
He and his wife and daughter and Mrs. Crump had gone to live
|
|
in a small house in Hoxton, where he would be unknown,
|
|
and whence he could walk to his place of business in the City.
|
|
For he was not an old man, and hoped yet to retrieve his fortunes.
|
|
Let us hope that he lived to retrieve his honesty, the tail
|
|
of which had slipped through his fingers to the very last joint,
|
|
if not beyond it.
|
|
|
|
Of course, Diamond's father had nothing to do for a time, but it was
|
|
not so hard for him to have nothing to do as it was for Miss Coleman.
|
|
He wrote to his wife that, if her sister would keep her there till
|
|
he got a place, it would be better for them, and he would be greatly
|
|
obliged to her. Meantime, the gentleman who had bought the house
|
|
had allowed his furniture to remain where it was for a little while.
|
|
|
|
Diamond's aunt was quite willing to keep them as long as she could.
|
|
And indeed Diamond was not yet well enough to be moved with safety.
|
|
|
|
When he had recovered so far as to be able to go out, one day his
|
|
mother got her sister's husband, who had a little pony-cart, to carry
|
|
them down to the sea-shore, and leave them there for a few hours.
|
|
He had some business to do further on at Ramsgate, and would pick them
|
|
up as he returned. A whiff of the sea-air would do them both good,
|
|
she said, and she thought besides she could best tell Diamond
|
|
what had happened if she had him quite to herself.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
|
|
|
THE SEASIDE
|
|
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND and his mother sat down upon the edge of the rough grass
|
|
that bordered the sand. The sun was just far enough past its
|
|
highest not to shine in their eyes when they looked eastward.
|
|
A sweet little wind blew on their left side, and comforted the
|
|
mother without letting her know what it was that comforted her.
|
|
Away before them stretched the sparkling waters of the ocean,
|
|
every wave of which flashed out its own delight back in the face
|
|
of the great sun, which looked down from the stillness of its blue
|
|
house with glorious silent face upon its flashing children.
|
|
On each hand the shore rounded outwards, forming a little bay.
|
|
There were no white cliffs here, as further north and south, and the
|
|
place was rather dreary, but the sky got at them so much the better.
|
|
Not a house, not a creature was within sight. Dry sand was about
|
|
their feet, and under them thin wiry grass, that just managed to grow
|
|
out of the poverty-stricken shore.
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear!" said Diamond's mother, with a deep sigh, "it's a sad world!"
|
|
|
|
"Is it?" said Diamond. "I didn't know."
|
|
|
|
"How should you know, child? You've been too well taken care of,
|
|
I trust."
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes, I have," returned Diamond. "I'm sorry! I thought you
|
|
were taken care of too. I thought my father took care of you.
|
|
I will ask him about it. I think he must have forgotten."
|
|
|
|
"Dear boy!" said his mother. "your father's the best man in the world."
|
|
|
|
"So I thought!" returned Diamond with triumph. "I was sure
|
|
of it!--Well, doesn't he take very good care of you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, he does," answered his mother, bursting into tears.
|
|
"But who's to take care of him? And how is he to take care of us
|
|
if he's got nothing to eat himself?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear!" said Diamond with a gasp; "hasn't he got anything
|
|
to eat? Oh! I must go home to him."
|
|
|
|
"No, no, child. He's not come to that yet. But what's to become
|
|
of us, I don't know."
|
|
|
|
"Are you very hungry, mother? There's the basket. I thought you
|
|
put something to eat in it."
|
|
|
|
"O you darling stupid! I didn't say I was hungry," returned his mother,
|
|
smiling through her tears.
|
|
|
|
"Then I don't understand you at all," said Diamond. "Do tell me
|
|
what's the matter."
|
|
|
|
"There are people in the world who have nothing to eat, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"Then I suppose they don't stop in it any longer. They--they--
|
|
what you call--die--don't they?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, they do. How would you like that?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. I never tried. But I suppose they go where they
|
|
get something to eat."
|
|
|
|
"Like enough they don't want it," said his mother, petulantly.
|
|
|
|
"That's all right then," said Diamond, thinking I daresay more
|
|
than he chose to put in words.
|
|
|
|
"Is it though? Poor boy! how little you know about things!
|
|
Mr. Coleman's lost all his money, and your father has nothing to do,
|
|
and we shall have nothing to eat by and by."
|
|
|
|
"Are you sure, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"Sure of what?"
|
|
|
|
"Sure that we shall have nothing to eat."
|
|
|
|
"No, thank Heaven! I'm not sure of it. I hope not."
|
|
|
|
"Then I can't understand it, mother. There's a piece of gingerbread
|
|
in the basket, I know."
|
|
|
|
"O you little bird! You have no more sense than a sparrow that picks
|
|
what it wants, and never thinks of the winter and the frost and,
|
|
the snow."
|
|
|
|
"Ah--yes--I see. But the birds get through the winter, don't they?"
|
|
|
|
"Some of them fall dead on the ground."
|
|
|
|
"They must die some time. They wouldn't like to be birds always.
|
|
Would you, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"What a child it is!" thought his mother, but she said nothing.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! now I remember," Diamond went on. "Father told me that day I went
|
|
to Epping Forest with him, that the rose-bushes, and the may-bushes,
|
|
and the holly-bushes were the bird's barns, for there were the hips,
|
|
and the haws, and the holly-berries, all ready for the winter."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; that's all very true. So you see the birds are provided for.
|
|
But there are no such barns for you and me, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"Ain't there?"
|
|
|
|
"No. We've got to work for our bread."
|
|
|
|
"Then let's go and work," said Diamond, getting up.
|
|
|
|
"It's no use. We've not got anything to do."
|
|
|
|
"Then let's wait."
|
|
|
|
"Then we shall starve."
|
|
|
|
"No. There's the basket. Do you know, mother, I think I shall call
|
|
that basket the barn."
|
|
|
|
"It's not a very big one. And when it's empty--where are we then?"
|
|
|
|
"At auntie's cupboard," returned Diamond promptly.
|
|
|
|
"But we can't eat auntie's things all up and leave her to starve."
|
|
|
|
"No, no. We'll go back to father before that. He'll have found
|
|
a cupboard somewhere by that time."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know it. But I haven't got even a cupboard, and I've always
|
|
had plenty to eat. I've heard you say I had too much, sometimes."
|
|
|
|
"But I tell you that's because I've had a cupboard for you, child."
|
|
|
|
"And when yours was empty, auntie opened hers."
|
|
|
|
"But that can't go on."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know? I think there must be a big cupboard somewhere,
|
|
out of which the little cupboards are filled, you know, mother."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I wish I could find the door of that cupboard," said his mother.
|
|
But the same moment she stopped, and was silent for a good while.
|
|
I cannot tell whether Diamond knew what she was thinking, but I
|
|
think I know. She had heard something at church the day before,
|
|
which came back upon her--something like this, that she hadn't
|
|
to eat for tomorrow as well as for to-day; and that what was not
|
|
wanted couldn't be missed. So, instead of saying anything more,
|
|
she stretched out her hand for the basket, and she and Diamond had
|
|
their dinner.
|
|
|
|
And Diamond did enjoy it. For the drive and the fresh air had made
|
|
him quite hungry; and he did not, like his mother, trouble himself
|
|
about what they should dine off that day week. The fact was he had
|
|
lived so long without any food at all at the back of the north wind,
|
|
that he knew quite well that food was not essential to existence;
|
|
that in fact, under certain circumstances, people could live without
|
|
it well enough.
|
|
|
|
His mother did not speak much during their dinner. After it was
|
|
over she helped him to walk about a little, but he was not able
|
|
for much and soon got tired. He did not get fretful, though.
|
|
He was too glad of having the sun and the wind again, to fret
|
|
because he could not run about. He lay down on the dry sand,
|
|
and his mother covered him with a shawl. She then sat by his side,
|
|
and took a bit of work from her pocket. But Diamond felt rather
|
|
sleepy, and turned on his side and gazed sleepily over the sand.
|
|
A few yards off he saw something fluttering.
|
|
|
|
"What is that, mother?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Only a bit of paper," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"It flutters more than a bit of paper would, I think," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I'll go and see if you like," said his mother. "My eyes are none
|
|
of the best."
|
|
|
|
So she rose and went and found that they were both right, for it
|
|
was a little book, partly buried in the sand. But several of its
|
|
leaves were clear of the sand, and these the wind kept blowing about
|
|
in a very flutterful manner. She took it up and brought it to Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, mother?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Some nursery rhymes, I think," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"I'm too sleepy," said Diamond. "Do read some of them to me."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I will," she said, and began one.--"But this is such nonsense!"
|
|
she said again. "I will try to find a better one."
|
|
|
|
She turned the leaves searching, but three times, with sudden puffs,
|
|
the wind blew the leaves rustling back to the same verses.
|
|
|
|
"Do read that one," said Diamond, who seemed to be of the same mind
|
|
as the wind. "It sounded very nice. I am sure it is a good one."
|
|
|
|
So his mother thought it might amuse him, though she couldn't
|
|
find any sense in it. She never thought he might understand it,
|
|
although she could not.
|
|
|
|
Now I do not exactly know what the mother read, but this is
|
|
what Diamond heard, or thought afterwards that he had heard.
|
|
He was, however, as I have said, very sleepy. And when he thought he
|
|
understood the verses he may have been only dreaming better ones.
|
|
This is how they went--
|
|
|
|
I know a river whose waters run asleep run run ever singing in the
|
|
shallows dumb in the hollows sleeping so deep and all the swallows
|
|
that dip their feathers in the hollows or in the shallows are the
|
|
merriest swallows of all for the nests they bake with the clay they
|
|
cake with the water they shake from their wings that rake the water
|
|
out of the shallows or the hollows will hold together in any weather
|
|
and so the swallows are the merriest fellows and have the merriest
|
|
children and are built so narrow like the head of an arrow to cut
|
|
the air and go just where the nicest water is flowing and the nicest
|
|
dust is blowing for each so narrow like head of an arrow is only
|
|
a barrow to carry the mud he makes from the nicest water flowing
|
|
and the nicest dust that is blowing to build his nest for her he
|
|
loves best with the nicest cakes which the sunshine bakes all for
|
|
their merry children all so callow with beaks that follow gaping
|
|
and hollow wider and wider after their father or after their mother
|
|
the food-provider who brings them a spider or a worm the poor hider
|
|
down in the earth so there's no dearth for their beaks as yellow
|
|
as the buttercups growing beside the flowing of the singing river
|
|
always and ever growing and blowing for fast as the sheep awake
|
|
or asleep crop them and crop them they cannot stop them but up they
|
|
creep and on they go blowing and so with the daisies the little
|
|
white praises they grow and they blow and they spread out their
|
|
crown and they praise the sun and when he goes down their praising
|
|
is done and they fold up their crown and they sleep every one till
|
|
over the plain he's shining amain and they're at it again praising
|
|
and praising such low songs raising that no one hears them but the sun
|
|
who rears them and the sheep that bite them are the quietest sheep
|
|
awake or asleep with the merriest bleat and the little lambs are
|
|
the merriest lambs they forget to eat for the frolic in their feet
|
|
and the lambs and their dams are the whitest sheep with the woolliest
|
|
wool and the longest wool and the trailingest tails and they shine
|
|
like snow in the grasses that grow by the singing river that sings
|
|
for ever and the sheep and the lambs are merry for ever because the
|
|
river sings and they drink it and the lambs and their dams are quiet
|
|
and white because of their diet for what they bite is buttercups
|
|
yellow and daisies white and grass as green as the river can make
|
|
it with wind as mellow to kiss it and shake it as never was seen
|
|
but here in the hollows beside the river where all the swallows
|
|
are merriest of fellows for the nests they make with the clay they
|
|
cake in the sunshine bake till they are like bone as dry in the wind
|
|
as a marble stone so firm they bind the grass in the clay that dries
|
|
in the wind the sweetest wind that blows by the river flowing
|
|
for ever but never you find whence comes the wind that blows on
|
|
the hollows and over the shallows where dip the swallows alive it
|
|
blows the life as it goes awake or asleep into the river that sings
|
|
as it flows and the life it blows into the sheep awake or asleep
|
|
with the woolliest wool and the trailingest tails and it never fails
|
|
gentle and cool to wave the wool and to toss the grass as the lambs
|
|
and the sheep over it pass and tug and bite with their teeth
|
|
so white and then with the sweep of their trailing tails smooth
|
|
it again and it grows amain and amain it grows and the wind as it
|
|
blows tosses the swallows over the hollows and down on the shallows
|
|
till every feather doth shake and quiver and all their feathers go
|
|
all together blowing the life and the joy so rife into the swallows
|
|
that skim the shallows and have the yellowest children for the wind
|
|
that blows is the life of the river flowing for ever that washes
|
|
the grasses still as it passes and feeds the daisies the little
|
|
white praises and buttercups bonny so golden and sunny with butter
|
|
and honey that whiten the sheep awake or asleep that nibble and bite
|
|
and grow whiter than white and merry and quiet on the sweet diet fed
|
|
by the river and tossed for ever by the wind that tosses the swallow
|
|
that crosses over the shallows dipping his wings to gather the water
|
|
and bake the cake that the wind shall make as hard as a bone as dry
|
|
as a stone it's all in the wind that blows from behind and all in
|
|
the river that flows for ever and all in the grasses and the white
|
|
daisies and the merry sheep awake or asleep and the happy swallows
|
|
skimming the shallows and it's all in the wind that blows from behind
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here Diamond became aware that his mother had stopped reading.
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you go on, mother dear?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"It's such nonsense!" said his mother. "I believe it would go
|
|
on for ever."
|
|
|
|
"That's just what it did," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What did?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Why, the river. That's almost the very tune it used to sing."
|
|
|
|
His mother was frightened, for she thought the fever was coming
|
|
on again. So she did not contradict him.
|
|
|
|
"Who made that poem?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know," she answered. "Some silly woman for her children,
|
|
I suppose--and then thought it good enough to print."
|
|
|
|
"She must have been at the back of the north wind some time
|
|
or other, anyhow," said Diamond. "She couldn't have got a hold of it
|
|
anywhere else. That's just how it went." And he began to chant
|
|
bits of it here and there; but his mother said nothing for fear
|
|
of making him, worse; and she was very glad indeed when she saw
|
|
her brother-in-law jogging along in his little cart. They lifted
|
|
Diamond in, and got up themselves, and away they went, "home again,
|
|
home again, home again," as Diamond sang. But he soon grew quiet,
|
|
and before they reached Sandwich he was fast asleep and dreaming
|
|
of the country at the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
|
|
|
OLD DIAMOND
|
|
|
|
|
|
AFTER this Diamond recovered so fast, that in a few days he was quite
|
|
able to go home as soon as his father had a place for them to go.
|
|
Now his father having saved a little money, and finding that no
|
|
situation offered itself, had been thinking over a new plan.
|
|
A strange occurrence it was which turned his thoughts in that direction.
|
|
He had a friend in the Bloomsbury region, who lived by letting
|
|
out cabs and horses to the cabmen. This man, happening to meet
|
|
him one day as he was returning from an unsuccessful application,
|
|
said to him:
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you set up for yourself now--in the cab line, I mean?"
|
|
|
|
"I haven't enough for that," answered Diamond's father.
|
|
|
|
"You must have saved a goodish bit, I should think. Just come home
|
|
with me now and look at a horse I can let you have cheap. I bought him
|
|
only a few weeks ago, thinking he'd do for a Hansom, but I was wrong.
|
|
He's got bone enough for a waggon, but a waggon ain't a Hansom.
|
|
He ain't got go enough for a Hansom. You see parties as takes
|
|
Hansoms wants to go like the wind, and he ain't got wind enough,
|
|
for he ain't so young as he once was. But for a four-wheeler
|
|
as takes families and their luggages, he's the very horse.
|
|
He'd carry a small house any day. I bought him cheap, and I'll sell
|
|
him cheap."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I don't want him," said Diamond's father. "A body must have
|
|
time to think over an affair of so much importance. And there's
|
|
the cab too. That would come to a deal of money."
|
|
|
|
"I could fit you there, I daresay," said his friend. "But come
|
|
and look at the animal, anyhow."
|
|
|
|
"Since I lost my own old pair, as was Mr. Coleman's,"
|
|
said Diamond's father, turning to accompany the cab-master,
|
|
"I ain't almost got the heart to look a horse in the face.
|
|
It's a thousand pities to part man and horse."
|
|
|
|
"So it is," returned his friend sympathetically.
|
|
|
|
But what was the ex-coachman's delight, when, on going into the
|
|
stable where his friend led him, he found the horse he wanted him
|
|
to buy was no other than his own old Diamond, grown very thin
|
|
and bony and long-legged, as if they, had been doing what they
|
|
could to fit him for Hansom work!
|
|
|
|
"He ain't a Hansom horse," said Diamond's father indignantly.
|
|
|
|
"Well, you're right. He ain't handsome, but he's a good un"
|
|
said his owner.
|
|
|
|
"Who says he ain't handsome? He's one of the handsomest horses
|
|
a gentleman's coachman ever druv," said Diamond's father;
|
|
remarking to himself under his breath--"though I says it as shouldn't"--
|
|
for he did not feel inclined all at once to confess that his own
|
|
old horse could have sunk so low.
|
|
|
|
"Well," said his friend, "all I say is--There's a animal for you,
|
|
as strong as a church; an'll go like a train, leastways a parly,"
|
|
he added, correcting himself.
|
|
|
|
But the coachman had a lump in his throat and tears in his eyes.
|
|
For the old horse, hearing his voice, had turned his long neck,
|
|
and when his old friend went up to him and laid his hand on his side,
|
|
he whinnied for joy, and laid his big head on his master's breast.
|
|
This settled the matter. The coachman's arms were round the
|
|
horse's neck in a moment, and he fairly broke down and cried.
|
|
The cab-master had never been so fond of a horse himself as to hug
|
|
him like that, but he saw in a moment how it was. And he must
|
|
have been a good-hearted fellow, for I never heard of such an idea
|
|
coming into the head of any other man with a horse to sell:
|
|
instead of putting something on to the price because he was now
|
|
pretty sure of selling him, he actually took a pound off what he
|
|
had meant to ask for him, saying to himself it was a shame to part
|
|
old friends.
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father, as soon as he came to himself, turned and asked
|
|
how much he wanted for the horse.
|
|
|
|
"I see you're old friends," said the owner.
|
|
|
|
"It's my own old Diamond. I liked him far the best of the pair,
|
|
though the other was good. You ain't got him too, have you?"
|
|
|
|
"No; nothing in the stable to match him there."
|
|
|
|
"I believe you," said the coachman. "But you'll be wanting a long
|
|
price for him, I know."
|
|
|
|
"No, not so much. I bought him cheap, and as I say, he ain't
|
|
for my work."
|
|
|
|
The end of it was that Diamond's father bought old Diamond again,
|
|
along with a four-wheeled cab. And as there were some rooms to be
|
|
had over the stable, he took them, wrote to his wife to come home,
|
|
and set up as a cabman.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV
|
|
|
|
THE MEWS
|
|
|
|
|
|
IT WAS late in the afternoon when Diamond and his mother and the baby
|
|
reached London. I was so full of Diamond that I forgot to tell you
|
|
a baby had arrived in the meantime. His father was waiting for them
|
|
with his own cab, but they had not told Diamond who the horse was;
|
|
for his father wanted to enjoy the pleasure of his surprise when he
|
|
found it out. He got in with his mother without looking at the horse,
|
|
and his father having put up Diamond's carpet-bag and his mother's
|
|
little trunk, got upon the box himself and drove off; and Diamond
|
|
was quite proud of riding home in his father's own carriage.
|
|
But when he got to the mews, he could not help being a little dismayed
|
|
at first; and if he had never been to the back of the north wind,
|
|
I am afraid he would have cried a little. But instead of that,
|
|
he said to himself it was a fine thing all the old furniture was there.
|
|
And instead of helping his mother to be miserable at the change,
|
|
he began to find out all the advantages of the place; for every
|
|
place has some advantages, and they are always better worth knowing
|
|
than the disadvantages. Certainly the weather was depressing,
|
|
for a thick, dull, persistent rain was falling by the time they
|
|
reached home. But happily the weather is very changeable;
|
|
and besides, there was a good fire burning in the room, which their
|
|
neighbour with the drunken husband had attended to for them; and the
|
|
tea-things were put out, and the kettle was boiling on the fire.
|
|
And with a good fire, and tea and bread and butter, things cannot
|
|
be said to be miserable.
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father and mother were, notwithstanding, rather miserable,
|
|
and Diamond began to feel a kind of darkness beginning to spread
|
|
over his own mind. But the same moment he said to himself,
|
|
"This will never do. I can't give in to this. I've been to the back
|
|
of the north wind. Things go right there, and so I must try to get
|
|
things to go right here. I've got to fight the miserable things.
|
|
They shan't make me miserable if I can help it." I do not mean
|
|
that he thought these very words. They are perhaps too grown-up
|
|
for him to have thought, but they represent the kind of thing that
|
|
was in his heart and his head. And when heart and head go together,
|
|
nothing can stand before them.
|
|
|
|
"What nice bread and butter this is!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I'm glad you like it, my dear" said his father. "I bought
|
|
the butter myself at the little shop round the corner."
|
|
|
|
"It's very nice, thank you, father. Oh, there's baby waking!
|
|
I'll take him."
|
|
|
|
"Sit still, Diamond," said his mother. "Go on with your bread
|
|
and butter. You're not strong enough to lift him yet."
|
|
|
|
So she took the baby herself, and set him on her knee. Then Diamond
|
|
began to amuse him, and went on till the little fellow was shrieking
|
|
with laughter. For the baby's world was his mother's arms;
|
|
and the drizzling rain, and the dreary mews, and even his father's
|
|
troubled face could not touch him. What cared baby for the loss
|
|
of a hundred situations? Yet neither father nor mother thought
|
|
him hard-hearted because he crowed and laughed in the middle
|
|
of their troubles. On the contrary, his crowing and laughing
|
|
were infectious. His little heart was so full of merriment that it
|
|
could not hold it all, and it ran over into theirs. Father and
|
|
mother began to laugh too, and Diamond laughed till he had a fit
|
|
of coughing which frightened his mother, and made them all stop.
|
|
His father took the baby, and his mother put him to bed.
|
|
|
|
But it was indeed a change to them all, not only from Sandwich,
|
|
but from their old place, instead of the great river where the huge
|
|
barges with their mighty brown and yellow sails went tacking
|
|
from side to side like little pleasure-skiffs, and where the long
|
|
thin boats shot past with eight and sometimes twelve rowers,
|
|
their windows now looked out upon a dirty paved yard. And there
|
|
was no garden more for Diamond to run into when he pleased, with gay
|
|
flowers about his feet, and solemn sun-filled trees over his head.
|
|
Neither was there a wooden wall at the back of his bed with a hole
|
|
in it for North Wind to come in at when she liked. Indeed, there was
|
|
such a high wall, and there were so many houses about the mews,
|
|
that North Wind seldom got into the place at all, except when something
|
|
must be done, and she had a grand cleaning out like other housewives;
|
|
while the partition at the head of Diamond's new bed only divided
|
|
it from the room occupied by a cabman who drank too much beer,
|
|
and came home chiefly to quarrel with his wife and pinch his children.
|
|
It was dreadful to Diamond to hear the scolding and the crying.
|
|
But it could not make him miserable, because he had been at the back of
|
|
the north wind.
|
|
|
|
If my reader find it hard to believe that Diamond should be so good,
|
|
he must remember that he had been to the back of the north wind.
|
|
If he never knew a boy so good, did he ever know a boy that had been
|
|
to the back of the north wind? It was not in the least strange
|
|
of Diamond to behave as he did; on the contrary, it was thoroughly
|
|
sensible of him.
|
|
|
|
We shall see how he got on.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND MAKES A BEGINNING
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE wind blew loud, but Diamond slept a deep sleep, and never heard it.
|
|
My own impression is that every time when Diamond slept well and
|
|
remembered nothing about it in the morning, he had been all that night
|
|
at the back of the north wind. I am almost sure that was how he
|
|
woke so refreshed, and felt so quiet and hopeful all the day.
|
|
Indeed he said this much, though not to me--that always when he
|
|
woke from such a sleep there was a something in his mind, he could
|
|
not tell what--could not tell whether it was the last far-off sounds
|
|
of the river dying away in the distance, or some of the words
|
|
of the endless song his mother had read to him on the sea-shore.
|
|
Sometimes he thought it must have been the twittering of the swallows--
|
|
over the shallows, you, know; but it may have been the chirping
|
|
of the dingy sparrows picking up their breakfast in the yard--
|
|
how can I tell? I don't know what I know, I only know what I think;
|
|
and to tell the truth, I am more for the swallows than the sparrows.
|
|
When he knew he was coming awake, he would sometimes try hard
|
|
to keep hold of the words of what seemed a new song, one he had
|
|
not heard before--a song in which the words and the music somehow
|
|
appeared to be all one; but even when he thought he had got them
|
|
well fixed in his mind, ever as he came awaker--as he would say--
|
|
one line faded away out of it, and then another, and then another,
|
|
till at last there was nothing left but some lovely picture of water
|
|
or grass or daisies, or something else very common, but with all the
|
|
commonness polished off it, and the lovely soul of it, which people
|
|
so seldom see, and, alas! yet seldomer believe in, shining out.
|
|
But after that he would sing the oddest, loveliest little songs
|
|
to the baby--of his own making, his mother said; but Diamond said he
|
|
did not make them; they were made somewhere inside him, and he knew
|
|
nothing about them till they were coming out.
|
|
|
|
When he woke that first morning he got up at once, saying to himself,
|
|
"I've been ill long enough, and have given a great deal of trouble;
|
|
I must try and be of use now, and help my mother." When he went into
|
|
her room he found her lighting the fire, and his father just getting
|
|
out of bed. They had only the one room, besides the little one,
|
|
not much more than a closet, in which Diamond slept. He began at
|
|
once to set things to rights, but the baby waking up, he took him,
|
|
and nursed him till his mother had got the breakfast ready.
|
|
She was looking gloomy, and his father was silent; and indeed except
|
|
Diamond had done all he possibly could to keep out the misery
|
|
that was trying to get in at doors and windows, he too would have
|
|
grown miserable, and then they would have been all miserable together.
|
|
But to try to make others comfortable is the only way to get right
|
|
comfortable ourselves, and that comes partly of not being able
|
|
to think so much about ourselves when we are helping other people.
|
|
For our Selves will always do pretty well if we don't pay them
|
|
too much attention. Our Selves are like some little children who
|
|
will be happy enough so long as they are left to their own games,
|
|
but when we begin to interfere with them, and make them presents
|
|
of too nice playthings, or too many sweet things, they begin at once
|
|
to fret and spoil.
|
|
|
|
"Why, Diamond, child!" said his mother at last, "you're as good to
|
|
your mother as if you were a girl--nursing the baby, and toasting
|
|
the bread, and sweeping up the hearth! I declare a body would
|
|
think you had been among the fairies."
|
|
|
|
Could Diamond have had greater praise or greater pleasure?
|
|
You see when he forgot his Self his mother took care of his Self,
|
|
and loved and praised his Self. Our own praises poison our Selves,
|
|
and puff and swell them up, till they lose all shape and beauty,
|
|
and become like great toadstools. But the praises of father or mother
|
|
do our Selves good, and comfort them and make them beautiful.
|
|
They never do them any harm. If they do any harm, it comes of our
|
|
mixing some of our own praises with them, and that turns them nasty
|
|
and slimy and poisonous.
|
|
|
|
When his father had finished his breakfast, which he did rather
|
|
in a hurry, he got up and went down into the yard to get out his
|
|
horse and put him to the cab.
|
|
|
|
"Won't you come and see the cab, Diamond?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, please, father--if mother can spare me a minute," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Bless the child! I don't want him," said his mother cheerfully.
|
|
|
|
But as he was following his father out of the door, she called
|
|
him back.
|
|
|
|
"Diamond, just hold the baby one minute. I have something to say
|
|
to your father."
|
|
|
|
So Diamond sat down again, took the baby in his lap, and began poking
|
|
his face into its little body, laughing and singing all the while,
|
|
so that the baby crowed like a little bantam. And what he sang was
|
|
something like this--such nonsense to those that couldn't understand
|
|
it! but not to the baby, who got all the good in the world out of it:--
|
|
|
|
baby's a-sleeping wake up baby for all the swallows are the merriest
|
|
fellows and have the yellowest children who would go sleeping
|
|
and snore like a gaby disturbing his mother and father and brother
|
|
and all a-boring their ears with his snoring snoring snoring for
|
|
himself and no other for himself in particular wake up baby sit up
|
|
perpendicular hark to the gushing hark to the rushing where the
|
|
sheep are the woolliest and the lambs the unruliest and their tails
|
|
the whitest and their eyes the brightest and baby's the bonniest
|
|
and baby's the funniest and baby's the shiniest and baby's the tiniest
|
|
and baby's the merriest and baby's the worriest of all the lambs
|
|
that plague their dams and mother's the whitest of all the dams
|
|
that feed the lambs that go crop-cropping without stop-stopping
|
|
and father's the best of all the swallows that build their nest out
|
|
of the shining shallows and he has the merriest children that's baby
|
|
and Diamond and Diamond and baby and baby and Diamond and Diamond and baby
|
|
|
|
|
|
Here Diamond's knees went off in a wild dance which tossed the baby
|
|
about and shook the laughter out of him in immoderate peals.
|
|
His mother had been listening at the door to the last few lines
|
|
of his song, and came in with the tears in her eyes. She took the
|
|
baby from him, gave him a kiss, and told him to run to his father.
|
|
|
|
By the time Diamond got into the yard, the horse was between the shafts,
|
|
and his father was looping the traces on. Diamond went round
|
|
to look at the horse. The sight of him made him feel very queer.
|
|
He did not know much about different horses, and all other horses
|
|
than their own were very much the same to him. But he could
|
|
not make it out. This was Diamond and it wasn't Diamond.
|
|
Diamond didn't hang his head like that; yet the head that was
|
|
hanging was very like the one that Diamond used to hold so high.
|
|
Diamond's bones didn't show through his skin like that; but the
|
|
skin they pushed out of shape so was very like Diamond's skin;
|
|
and the bones might be Diamond's bones, for he had never seen the
|
|
shape of them. But when he came round in front of the old horse,
|
|
and he put out his long neck, and began sniffing at him and rubbing
|
|
his upper lip and his nose on him, then Diamond saw it could be no
|
|
other than old Diamond, and he did just as his father had done before--
|
|
put his arms round his neck and cried--but not much.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't it jolly, father?" he said. "Was there ever anybody so lucky
|
|
as me? Dear old Diamond!"
|
|
|
|
And he hugged the horse again, and kissed both his big hairy cheeks.
|
|
He could only manage one at a time, however--the other cheek was
|
|
so far off on the other side of his big head.
|
|
|
|
His father mounted the box with just the same air, as Diamond thought,
|
|
with which he had used to get upon the coach-box, and Diamond said
|
|
to himself, "Father's as grand as ever anyhow." He had kept his
|
|
brown livery-coat, only his wife had taken the silver buttons off
|
|
and put brass ones instead, because they did not think it polite
|
|
to Mr. Coleman in his fallen fortunes to let his crest be seen
|
|
upon the box of a cab. Old Diamond had kept just his collar;
|
|
and that had the silver crest upon it still, for his master thought
|
|
nobody would notice that, and so let it remain for a memorial
|
|
of the better days of which it reminded him--not unpleasantly,
|
|
seeing it had been by no fault either of his or of the old horse's
|
|
that they had come down in the world together.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, father, do let me drive a bit," said Diamond, jumping up
|
|
on the box beside him.
|
|
|
|
His father changed places with him at once, putting the reins
|
|
into his hands. Diamond gathered them up eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"Don't pull at his mouth," said his father. "just feel,
|
|
at it gently to let him know you're there and attending to him.
|
|
That's what I call talking to him through the reins."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, father, I understand," said Diamond. Then to the horse he said,
|
|
"Go on Diamond." And old Diamond's ponderous bulk began at once
|
|
to move to the voice of the little boy.
|
|
|
|
But before they had reached the entrance of the mews, another voice
|
|
called after young Diamond, which, in his turn, he had to obey,
|
|
for it was that of his mother. "Diamond! Diamond!" it cried;
|
|
and Diamond pulled the reins, and the horse stood still as a stone.
|
|
|
|
"Husband," said his mother, coming up, "you're never going to trust
|
|
him with the reins--a baby like that?"
|
|
|
|
"He must learn some day, and he can't begin too soon. I see already
|
|
he's a born coachman," said his father proudly. "And I don't see
|
|
well how he could escape it, for my father and my grandfather,
|
|
that's his great-grandfather, was all coachmen, I'm told; so it
|
|
must come natural to him, any one would think. Besides, you see,
|
|
old Diamond's as proud of him as we are our own selves, wife. Don't you
|
|
see how he's turning round his ears, with the mouths of them open,
|
|
for the first word he speaks to tumble in? He's too well bred
|
|
to turn his head, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Well, but, husband, I can't do without him to-day. Everything's
|
|
got to be done, you know. It's my first day here. And there's
|
|
that baby!"
|
|
|
|
"Bless you, wife! I never meant to take him away--only to the
|
|
bottom of Endell Street. He can watch his way back."
|
|
|
|
"No thank you, father; not to-day," said Diamond. "Mother wants me.
|
|
Perhaps she'll let me go another day."
|
|
|
|
"Very well, my man," said his father, and took the reins which
|
|
Diamond was holding out to him.
|
|
|
|
Diamond got down, a little disappointed of course, and went with
|
|
his mother, who was too pleased to speak. She only took hold
|
|
of his hand as tight as if she had been afraid of his running
|
|
away instead of glad that he would not leave her.
|
|
|
|
Now, although they did not know it, the owner of the stables,
|
|
the same man who had sold the horse to his father, had been standing
|
|
just inside one of the stable-doors, with his hands in his pockets,
|
|
and had heard and seen all that passed; and from that day John
|
|
Stonecrop took a great fancy to the little boy. And this was the
|
|
beginning of what came of it.
|
|
|
|
The same evening, just as Diamond was feeling tired of the day's work,
|
|
and wishing his father would come home, Mr. Stonecrop knocked
|
|
at the door. His mother went and opened it.
|
|
|
|
"Good evening, ma'am," said he. "Is the little master in?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, to be sure he is--at your service, I'm sure, Mr. Stonecrop,"
|
|
said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"No, no, ma'am; it's I'm at his service. I'm just a-going out
|
|
with my own cab, and if he likes to come with me, he shall drive
|
|
my old horse till he's tired."
|
|
|
|
"It's getting rather late for him," said his mother thoughtfully.
|
|
"You see he's been an invalid."
|
|
|
|
Diamond thought, what a funny thing! How could he have been an invalid
|
|
when he did not even know what the word meant? But, of course,
|
|
his mother was right.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, well," said Mr. Stonecrop, "I can just let him drive through
|
|
Bloomsbury Square, and then he shall run home again."
|
|
|
|
"Very good, sir. And I'm much obliged to you," said his mother.
|
|
And Diamond, dancing with delight, got his cap, put his hand in
|
|
Mr. Stonecrop's, and went with him to the yard where the cab was waiting.
|
|
He did not think the horse looked nearly so nice as Diamond,
|
|
nor Mr. Stonecrop nearly so grand as his father; but he was none,
|
|
the less pleased. He got up on the box, and his new friend got up
|
|
beside him.
|
|
|
|
"What's the horse's name?" whispered Diamond, as he took the reins
|
|
from the man.
|
|
|
|
"It's not a nice name," said Mr. Stonecrop. "You needn't call him
|
|
by it. I didn't give it him. He'll go well enough without it.
|
|
Give the boy a whip, Jack. I never carries one when I drive old----"
|
|
|
|
He didn't finish the sentence. Jack handed Diamond a whip,
|
|
with which, by holding it half down the stick, he managed just
|
|
to flack the haunches of the horse; and away he went.
|
|
|
|
"Mind the gate," said Mr. Stonecrop; and Diamond did mind the gate,
|
|
and guided the nameless horse through it in safety, pulling him this
|
|
way and that according as was necessary. Diamond learned to drive
|
|
all the sooner that he had been accustomed to do what he was told,
|
|
and could obey the smallest hint in a moment. Nothing helps one to get
|
|
on like that. Some people don't know how to do what they are told;
|
|
they have not been used to it, and they neither understand quickly
|
|
nor are able to turn what they do understand into action quickly.
|
|
With an obedient mind one learns the rights of things fast enough;
|
|
for it is the law of the universe, and to obey is to understand.
|
|
|
|
"Look out!" cried Mr. Stonecrop, as they were turning the corner
|
|
into Bloomsbury Square.
|
|
|
|
It was getting dusky now. A cab was approaching rather rapidly
|
|
from the opposite direction, and Diamond pulling aside, and the
|
|
other driver pulling up, they only just escaped a collision.
|
|
Then they knew each other.
|
|
|
|
"Why, Diamond, it's a bad beginning to run into your own father,"
|
|
cried the driver.
|
|
|
|
"But, father, wouldn't it have been a bad ending to run into your
|
|
own son?" said Diamond in return; and the two men laughed heartily.
|
|
|
|
"This is very kind of you, I'm sure, Stonecrop," said his father.
|
|
|
|
"Not a bit. He's a brave fellow, and'll be fit to drive on his own
|
|
hook in a week or two. But I think you'd better let him drive you
|
|
home now, for his mother don't like his having over much of the
|
|
night air, and I promised not to take him farther than the square."
|
|
|
|
"Come along then, Diamond," said his father, as he brought his cab
|
|
up to the other, and moved off the box to the seat beside it.
|
|
Diamond jumped across, caught at the reins, said "Good-night, and
|
|
thank you, Mr. Stonecrop," and drove away home, feeling more of a
|
|
man than he had ever yet had a chance of feeling in all his life.
|
|
Nor did his father find it necessary to give him a single hint
|
|
as to his driving. Only I suspect the fact that it was old Diamond,
|
|
and old Diamond on his way to his stable, may have had something
|
|
to do with young Diamond's success.
|
|
|
|
"Well, child," said his mother, when he entered the room,
|
|
"you've not been long gone."
|
|
|
|
"No, mother; here I am. Give me the baby."
|
|
|
|
"The baby's asleep," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Then give him to me, and I'll lay him down."
|
|
|
|
But as Diamond took him, he woke up and began to laugh.
|
|
For he was indeed one of the merriest children. And no wonder,
|
|
for he was as plump as a plum-pudding, and had never had an
|
|
ache or a pain that lasted more than five minutes at a time.
|
|
Diamond sat down with him and began to sing to him.
|
|
|
|
baby baby babbing your father's gone a-cabbing to catch a shilling
|
|
for its pence to make the baby babbing dance for old Diamond's
|
|
a duck they say he can swim but the duck of diamonds is baby that's
|
|
him and of all the swallows the merriest fellows that bake their
|
|
cake with the water they shake out of the river flowing for ever
|
|
and make dust into clay on the shiniest day to build their nest
|
|
father's the best and mother's the whitest and her eyes are the
|
|
brightest of all the dams that watch their lambs cropping the grass
|
|
where the waters pass singing for ever and of all the lambs with
|
|
the shakingest tails and the jumpingest feet baby's the funniest
|
|
baby's the bonniest and he never wails and he's always sweet
|
|
and Diamond's his nurse and Diamond's his nurse and Diamond's his nurse
|
|
|
|
|
|
When Diamond's rhymes grew scarce, he always began dancing the baby.
|
|
Some people wondered that such a child could rhyme as he did,
|
|
but his rhymes were not very good, for he was only trying to remember
|
|
what he had heard the river sing at the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND GOES ON
|
|
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND became a great favourite with all the men about the mews.
|
|
Some may think it was not the best place in the world for him
|
|
to be brought up in; but it must have been, for there he was.
|
|
At first, he heard a good many rough and bad words; but he did
|
|
not like them, and so they did him little harm. He did not know
|
|
in the least what they meant, but there was something in the very
|
|
sound of them, and in the tone of voice in which they were said,
|
|
which Diamond felt to be ugly. So they did not even stick to him,
|
|
not to say get inside him. He never took any notice of them,
|
|
and his face shone pure and good in the middle of them, like a
|
|
primrose in a hailstorm. At first, because his face was so quiet
|
|
and sweet, with a smile always either awake or asleep in his eyes,
|
|
and because he never heeded their ugly words and rough jokes,
|
|
they said he wasn't all there, meaning that he was half an idiot,
|
|
whereas he was a great deal more there than they had the sense to see.
|
|
And before long the bad words found themselves ashamed to come
|
|
out of the men's mouths when Diamond was near. The one would
|
|
nudge the other to remind him that the boy was within hearing,
|
|
and the words choked themselves before they got any farther.
|
|
When they talked to him nicely he had always a good answer, sometimes a
|
|
smart one, ready, and that helped much to make them change their minds
|
|
about him.
|
|
|
|
One day Jack gave him a curry-comb and a brush to try his hand
|
|
upon old Diamond's coat. He used them so deftly, so gently,
|
|
and yet so thoroughly, as far as he could reach, that the man could
|
|
not help admiring him.
|
|
|
|
"You must make haste and, grow" he said. "It won't do to have
|
|
a horse's belly clean and his back dirty, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Give me a leg," said Diamond, and in a moment he was on the old
|
|
horse's back with the comb and brush. He sat on his withers,
|
|
and reaching forward as he ate his hay, he curried and he brushed,
|
|
first at one side of his neck, and then at the other.
|
|
When that was done he asked for a dressing-comb, and combed
|
|
his mane thoroughly. Then he pushed himself on to his back,
|
|
and did his shoulders as far down as he could reach. Then he sat
|
|
on his croup, and did his back and sides; then he turned around
|
|
like a monkey, and attacked his hind-quarters, and combed his tail.
|
|
This last was not so easy to manage, for he had to lift it up,
|
|
and every now and then old Diamond would whisk it out of his hands,
|
|
and once he sent the comb flying out of the stable door, to the
|
|
great amusement of the men. But Jack fetched it again, and Diamond
|
|
began once more, and did not leave off until he had done the whole
|
|
business fairly well, if not in a first-rate, experienced fashion.
|
|
All the time the old horse went on eating his hay, and, but with an
|
|
occasional whisk of his tail when Diamond tickled or scratched him,
|
|
took no notice of the proceeding. But that was all a pretence,
|
|
for he knew very well who it was that was perched on his back,
|
|
and rubbing away at him with the comb and the brush. So he was
|
|
quite pleased and proud, and perhaps said to himself something
|
|
like this--
|
|
|
|
"I'm a stupid old horse, who can't brush his own coat; but there's
|
|
my young godson on my back, cleaning me like an angel."
|
|
|
|
I won't vouch for what the old horse was thinking, for it
|
|
is very difficult to find out what any old horse is thinking.
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear!" said Diamond when he had done, "I'm so tired!"
|
|
|
|
And he laid himself down at full length on old Diamond's back.
|
|
|
|
By this time all the men in the stable were gathered about the
|
|
two Diamonds, and all much amused. One of them lifted him down,
|
|
and from that time he was a greater favourite than before.
|
|
And if ever there was a boy who had a chance of being a prodigy
|
|
at cab-driving, Diamond was that boy, for the strife came to be
|
|
who should have him out with him on the box.
|
|
|
|
His mother, however, was a little shy of the company for him,
|
|
and besides she could not always spare him. Also his father liked
|
|
to have him himself when he could; so that he was more desired
|
|
than enjoyed among the cabmen.
|
|
|
|
But one way and another he did learn to drive all sorts of horses,
|
|
and to drive them well, and that through the most crowded streets
|
|
in London City. Of course there was the man always on the box-seat
|
|
beside him, but before long there was seldom the least occasion
|
|
to take the reins from out of his hands. For one thing he never
|
|
got frightened, and consequently was never in too great a hurry.
|
|
Yet when the moment came for doing something sharp, he was always
|
|
ready for it. I must once more remind my readers that he had been
|
|
to the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
One day, which was neither washing-day, nor cleaning-day nor
|
|
marketing-day, nor Saturday, nor Monday--upon which consequently Diamond
|
|
could be spared from the baby--his father took him on his own cab.
|
|
After a stray job or two by the way, they drew up in the row upon
|
|
the stand between Cockspur Street and Pall Mall. They waited
|
|
a long time, but nobody seemed to want to be carried anywhere.
|
|
By and by ladies would be going home from the Academy exhibition,
|
|
and then there would be a chance of a job.
|
|
|
|
"Though, to be sure," said Diamond's father--with what truth I
|
|
cannot say, but he believed what he said--"some ladies is very hard,
|
|
and keeps you to the bare sixpence a mile, when every one knows
|
|
that ain't enough to keep a family and a cab upon. To be sure
|
|
it's the law; but mayhap they may get more law than they like some
|
|
day themselves."
|
|
|
|
As it was very hot, Diamond's father got down to have a glass
|
|
of beer himself, and give another to the old waterman. He left
|
|
Diamond on the box.
|
|
|
|
A sudden noise got up, and Diamond looked round to see what was
|
|
the matter.
|
|
|
|
There was a crossing near the cab-stand, where a girl was sweeping.
|
|
Some rough young imps had picked a quarrel with her, and were
|
|
now hauling at her broom to get it away from her. But as they
|
|
did not pull all together, she was holding it against them,
|
|
scolding and entreating alternately.
|
|
|
|
Diamond was off his box in a moment, and running to the help of the girl.
|
|
He got hold of the broom at her end and pulled along with her.
|
|
But the boys proceeded to rougher measures, and one of them hit
|
|
Diamond on the nose, and made it bleed; and as he could not let
|
|
go the broom to mind his nose, he was soon a dreadful figure.
|
|
But presently his father came back, and missing Diamond, looked about.
|
|
He had to look twice, however, before he could be sure that that
|
|
was his boy in the middle of the tumult. He rushed in, and sent
|
|
the assailants flying in all directions. The girl thanked Diamond,
|
|
and began sweeping as if nothing had happened, while his father
|
|
led him away. With the help of old Tom, the waterman, he was soon
|
|
washed into decency, and his father set him on the box again,
|
|
perfectly satisfied with the account he gave of the cause of his being
|
|
in a fray.
|
|
|
|
"I couldn't let them behave so to a poor girl--could I, father?"
|
|
he said.
|
|
|
|
"Certainly not, Diamond," said his father, quite pleased,
|
|
for Diamond's father was a gentleman.
|
|
|
|
A moment after, up came the girl, running, with her broom over
|
|
her shoulder, and calling, "Cab, there! cab!"
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father turned instantly, for he was the foremost in the rank,
|
|
and followed the girl. One or two other passing cabs heard the cry,
|
|
and made for the place, but the girl had taken care not to call
|
|
till she was near enough to give her friends the first chance.
|
|
When they reached the curbstone--who should it be waiting for the cab
|
|
but Mrs. and Miss Coleman! They did not look at the cabman, however.
|
|
The girl opened the door for them; they gave her the address,
|
|
and a penny; she told the cabman, and away they drove.
|
|
|
|
When they reached the house, Diamond's father got down and rang
|
|
the bell. As he opened the door of the cab, he touched his hat
|
|
as he had been wont to do. The ladies both stared for a moment,
|
|
and then exclaimed together:
|
|
|
|
"Why, Joseph! can it be you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, ma'am; yes, miss," answered he, again touching his hat,
|
|
with all the respect he could possibly put into the action.
|
|
"It's a lucky day which I see you once more upon it."
|
|
|
|
"Who would have thought it?" said Mrs. Coleman. "It's changed
|
|
times for both of us, Joseph, and it's not very often we can
|
|
have a cab even; but you see my daughter is still very poorly,
|
|
and she can't bear the motion of the omnibuses. Indeed we meant
|
|
to walk a bit first before we took a cab, but just at the corner,
|
|
for as hot as the sun was, a cold wind came down the street,
|
|
and I saw that Miss Coleman must not face it. But to think
|
|
we should have fallen upon you, of all the cabmen in London!
|
|
I didn't know you had got a cab."
|
|
|
|
"Well, you see, ma'am, I had a chance of buying the old horse,
|
|
and I couldn't resist him. There he is, looking at you, ma'am. Nobody
|
|
knows the sense in that head of his."
|
|
|
|
The two ladies went near to pat the horse, and then they noticed
|
|
Diamond on the box.
|
|
|
|
"Why, you've got both Diamonds with you," said Miss Coleman.
|
|
"How do you do, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
Diamond lifted his cap, and answered politely.
|
|
|
|
"He'll be fit to drive himself before long," said his father,
|
|
proudly. "The old horse is a-teaching of him."
|
|
|
|
"Well, he must come and see us, now you've found us out.
|
|
Where do you live?"
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father gave the ladies a ticket with his name and address
|
|
printed on it; and then Mrs. Coleman took out her purse, saying:
|
|
|
|
"And what's your fare, Joseph?"
|
|
|
|
"No, thank you, ma'am," said Joseph. "It was your own old horse
|
|
as took you; and me you paid long ago."
|
|
|
|
He jumped on his box before she could say another word,
|
|
and with a parting salute drove off, leaving them on the pavement,
|
|
with the maid holding the door for them.
|
|
|
|
It was a long time now since Diamond had seen North Wind,
|
|
or even thought much about her. And as his father drove along,
|
|
he was thinking not about her, but about the crossing-sweeper,
|
|
and was wondering what made him feel as if he knew her quite well,
|
|
when he could not remember anything of her. But a picture arose
|
|
in his mind of a little girl running before the wind and dragging
|
|
her broom after her; and from that, by degrees, he recalled the
|
|
whole adventure of the night when he got down from North Wind's
|
|
back in a London street. But he could not quite satisfy himself
|
|
whether the whole affair was not a dream which he had dreamed
|
|
when he was a very little boy. Only he had been to the back of
|
|
the north wind since--there could be no doubt of that; for when he
|
|
woke every morning, he always knew that he had been there again.
|
|
And as he thought and thought, he recalled another thing that had
|
|
happened that morning, which, although it seemed a mere accident,
|
|
might have something to do with what had happened since. His father
|
|
had intended going on the stand at King's Cross that morning, and had
|
|
turned into Gray's Inn Lane to drive there, when they found the way
|
|
blocked up, and upon inquiry were informed that a stack of chimneys
|
|
had been blown down in the night, and had fallen across the road.
|
|
They were just clearing the rubbish away. Diamond's father turned,
|
|
and made for Charing Cross.
|
|
|
|
That night the father and mother had a great deal to talk about.
|
|
|
|
"Poor things!" said the mother. "it's worse for them than it
|
|
is for us. You see they've been used to such grand things,
|
|
and for them to come down to a little poky house like that--
|
|
it breaks my heart to think of it."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know" said Diamond thoughtfully, "whether Mrs. Coleman
|
|
had bells on her toes."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, child?" said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"She had rings on her fingers, anyhow," returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Of course she had, as any lady would. What has that to do with it?"
|
|
|
|
"When we were down at Sandwich," said Diamond, "you said you would
|
|
have to part with your mother's ring, now we were poor."
|
|
|
|
"Bless the child; he forgets nothing," said his mother.
|
|
"Really, Diamond, a body would need to mind what they say to you."
|
|
|
|
"Why?" said Diamond. "I only think about it."
|
|
|
|
"That's just why," said the mother.
|
|
|
|
"Why is that why?" persisted Diamond, for he had not yet learned
|
|
that grown-up people are not often so much grown up that they
|
|
never talk like children--and spoilt ones too.
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Coleman is none so poor as all that yet. No, thank Heaven!
|
|
she's not come to that."
|
|
|
|
"Is it a great disgrace to be poor?" asked Diamond, because of
|
|
the tone in which his mother had spoken.
|
|
|
|
But his mother, whether conscience-stricken I do not know hurried
|
|
him away to bed, where after various attempts to understand her,
|
|
resumed and resumed again in spite of invading sleep, he was
|
|
conquered at last, and gave in, murmuring over and over to himself,
|
|
"Why is why?" but getting no answer to the question.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII
|
|
|
|
THE DRUNKEN CABMAN
|
|
|
|
|
|
A FEW nights after this, Diamond woke up suddenly, believing he heard
|
|
North Wind thundering along. But it was something quite different.
|
|
South Wind was moaning round the chimneys, to be sure, for she
|
|
was not very happy that night, but it was not her voice that had
|
|
wakened Diamond. Her voice would only have lulled him the deeper asleep.
|
|
It was a loud, angry voice, now growling like that of a beast,
|
|
now raving like that of a madman; and when Diamond came a little
|
|
wider awake, he knew that it was the voice of the drunken cabman,
|
|
the wall of whose room was at the head of his bed. It was anything
|
|
but pleasant to hear, but he could not help hearing it. At length
|
|
there came a cry from the woman, and then a scream from the baby.
|
|
Thereupon Diamond thought it time that somebody did something,
|
|
and as himself was the only somebody at hand, he must go and see
|
|
whether he could not do something. So he got up and put on part
|
|
of his clothes, and went down the stair, for the cabman's room did
|
|
not open upon their stair, and he had to go out into the yard,
|
|
and in at the next door. This, fortunately, the cabman, being drunk,
|
|
had left open. By the time he reached their stair, all was still except
|
|
the voice of the crying baby, which guided him to the right door.
|
|
He opened it softly, and peeped in. There, leaning back in a chair,
|
|
with his arms hanging down by his sides, and his legs stretched
|
|
out before him and supported on his heels, sat the drunken cabman.
|
|
His wife lay in her clothes upon the bed, sobbing, and the baby was
|
|
wailing in the cradle. It was very miserable altogether.
|
|
|
|
Now the way most people do when they see anything very miserable
|
|
is to turn away from the sight, and try to forget it. But Diamond
|
|
began as usual to try to destroy the misery. The little boy was just
|
|
as much one of God's messengers as if he had been an angel with a
|
|
flaming sword, going out to fight the devil. The devil he had to fight
|
|
just then was Misery. And the way he fought him was the very best.
|
|
Like a wise soldier, he attacked him first in his weakest point--
|
|
that was the, baby; for Misery can never get such a hold of a baby
|
|
as of a grown person. Diamond was knowing in babies, and he knew he
|
|
could do something to make the baby, happy; for although he had only
|
|
known one baby as yet, and although not one baby is the same as another,
|
|
yet they are so very much alike in some things, and he knew that one
|
|
baby so thoroughly, that he had good reason to believe he could do
|
|
something for any other. I have known people who would have begun
|
|
to fight the devil in a very different and a very stupid way.
|
|
They would have begun by scolding the idiotic cabman; and next they
|
|
would make his wife angry by saying it must be her fault as well
|
|
as his, and by leaving ill-bred though well-meant shabby little
|
|
books for them to read, which they were sure to hate the sight of;
|
|
while all the time they would not have put out a finger to touch
|
|
the wailing baby. But Diamond had him out of the cradle in a moment,
|
|
set him up on his knee, and told him to look at the light.
|
|
Now all the light there was came only from a lamp in the yard,
|
|
and it was a very dingy and yellow light, for the glass of the lamp
|
|
was dirty, and the gas was bad; but the light that came from
|
|
it was, notwithstanding, as certainly light as if it had come
|
|
from the sun itself, and the baby knew that, and smiled to it;
|
|
and although it was indeed a wretched room which that lamp lighted--
|
|
so dreary, and dirty, and empty, and hopeless!--there in the middle
|
|
of it sat Diamond on a stool, smiling to the baby, and the baby on his
|
|
knees smiling to the lamp. The father of him sat staring at nothing,
|
|
neither asleep nor awake, not quite lost in stupidity either,
|
|
for through it all he was dimly angry with himself, he did not
|
|
know why. It was that he had struck his wife. He had forgotten it,
|
|
but was miserable about it, notwithstanding. And this misery was the
|
|
voice of the great Love that had made him and his wife and the baby
|
|
and Diamond, speaking in his heart, and telling him to be good.
|
|
For that great Love speaks in the most wretched and dirty hearts;
|
|
only the tone of its voice depends on the echoes of the place in which
|
|
it sounds. On Mount Sinai, it was thunder; in the cabman's heart
|
|
it was misery; in the soul of St. John it was perfect blessedness.
|
|
|
|
By and by he became aware that there was a voice of singing in the room.
|
|
This, of course, was the voice of Diamond singing to the baby--
|
|
song after song, every one as foolish as another to the cabman,
|
|
for he was too tipsy to part one word from another: all the words
|
|
mixed up in his ear in a gurgle without division or stop; for such
|
|
was the way he spoke himself, when he was in this horrid condition.
|
|
But the baby was more than content with Diamond's songs, and Diamond
|
|
himself was so contented with what the songs were all about, that he did
|
|
not care a bit about the songs themselves, if only baby liked them.
|
|
But they did the cabman good as well as the baby and Diamond,
|
|
for they put him to sleep, and the sleep was busy all the time
|
|
it lasted, smoothing the wrinkles out of his temper.
|
|
|
|
At length Diamond grew tired of singing, and began to talk
|
|
to the baby instead. And as soon as he stopped singing,
|
|
the cabman began to wake up. His brain was a little clearer now,
|
|
his temper a little smoother, and his heart not quite so dirty.
|
|
He began to listen and he went on listening, and heard Diamond
|
|
saying to the baby something like this, for he thought the cabman
|
|
was asleep:
|
|
|
|
"Poor daddy! Baby's daddy takes too much beer and gin, and that
|
|
makes him somebody else, and not his own self at all. Baby's daddy
|
|
would never hit baby's mammy if he didn't take too much beer.
|
|
He's very fond of baby's mammy, and works from morning to night
|
|
to get her breakfast and dinner and supper, only at night he forgets,
|
|
and pays the money away for beer. And they put nasty stuff in beer,
|
|
I've heard my daddy say, that drives all the good out, and lets all
|
|
the bad in. Daddy says when a man takes a drink, there's a thirsty
|
|
devil creeps into his inside, because he knows he will always get
|
|
enough there. And the devil is always crying out for more drink,
|
|
and that makes the man thirsty, and so he drinks more and more,
|
|
till he kills himself with it. And then the ugly devil creeps
|
|
out of him, and crawls about on his belly, looking for some other
|
|
cabman to get into, that he may drink, drink, drink. That's what my
|
|
daddy says, baby. And he says, too, the only way to make the devil
|
|
come out is to give him plenty of cold water and tea and coffee,
|
|
and nothing at all that comes from the public-house; for the devil
|
|
can't abide that kind of stuff, and creeps out pretty soon, for fear
|
|
of being drowned in it. But your daddy will drink the nasty stuff,
|
|
poor man! I wish he wouldn't, for it makes mammy cross with him,
|
|
and no wonder! and then when mammy's cross, he's crosser,
|
|
and there's nobody in the house to take care of them but baby;
|
|
and you do take care of them, baby--don't you, baby? I know you do.
|
|
Babies always take care of their fathers and mothers--don't they, baby?
|
|
That's what they come for--isn't it, baby? And when daddy stops
|
|
drinking beer and nasty gin with turpentine in it, father says,
|
|
then mammy will be so happy, and look so pretty! and daddy will
|
|
be so good to baby! and baby will be as happy as a swallow,
|
|
which is the merriest fellow! And Diamond will be so happy too!
|
|
And when Diamond's a man, he'll take baby out with him on the box,
|
|
and teach him to drive a cab."
|
|
|
|
He went on with chatter like this till baby was asleep, by which
|
|
time he was tired, and father and mother were both wide awake--
|
|
only rather confused--the one from the beer, the other from the blow--
|
|
and staring, the one from his chair, the other from her bed,
|
|
at Diamond. But he was quite unaware of their notice, for he
|
|
sat half-asleep, with his eyes wide open, staring in his turn,
|
|
though without knowing it, at the cabman, while the cabman could
|
|
not withdraw his gaze from Diamond's white face and big eyes.
|
|
For Diamond's face was always rather pale, and now it was paler than
|
|
usual with sleeplessness, and the light of the street-lamp upon it.
|
|
At length he found himself nodding, and he knew then it was time
|
|
to put the baby down, lest he should let him fall. So he rose from
|
|
the little three-legged stool, and laid the baby in the cradle,
|
|
and covered him up--it was well it was a warm night, and he did not
|
|
want much covering--and then he all but staggered out of the door,
|
|
he was so tipsy himself with sleep.
|
|
|
|
"Wife," said the cabman, turning towards the bed, "I do somehow believe
|
|
that wur a angel just gone. Did you see him, wife? He warn't wery big,
|
|
and he hadn't got none o' them wingses, you know. It wur one o'
|
|
them baby-angels you sees on the gravestones, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Nonsense, hubby!" said his wife; "but it's just as good.
|
|
I might say better, for you can ketch hold of him when you like.
|
|
That's little Diamond as everybody knows, and a duck o' diamonds he is!
|
|
No woman could wish for a better child than he be."
|
|
|
|
"I ha' heerd on him in the stable, but I never see the brat afore.
|
|
Come, old girl, let bygones be bygones, and gie us a kiss,
|
|
and we'll go to bed."
|
|
|
|
The cabman kept his cab in another yard, although he had his room
|
|
in this. He was often late in coming home, and was not one to take
|
|
notice of children, especially when he was tipsy, which was oftener
|
|
than not. Hence, if he had ever seen Diamond, he did not know him.
|
|
But his wife knew him well enough, as did every one else who lived
|
|
all day in the yard. She was a good-natured woman. It was she
|
|
who had got the fire lighted and the tea ready for them when Diamond
|
|
and his mother came home from Sandwich. And her husband was not
|
|
an ill-natured man either, and when in the morning he recalled not
|
|
only Diamond's visit, but how he himself had behaved to his wife,
|
|
he was very vexed with himself, and gladdened his poor wife's heart
|
|
by telling her how sorry he was. And for a whole week after,
|
|
he did not go near the public-house, hard as it was to avoid it,
|
|
seeing a certain rich brewer had built one, like a trap to catch
|
|
souls and bodies in, at almost every corner he had to pass on his
|
|
way home. Indeed, he was never quite so bad after that, though it
|
|
was some time before he began really to reform.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND'S FRIENDS
|
|
|
|
|
|
ONE day when old Diamond was standing with his nose in his bag
|
|
between Pall Mall and Cockspur Street, and his master was reading
|
|
the newspaper on the box of his cab, which was the last of a good
|
|
many in the row, little Diamond got down for a run, for his legs
|
|
were getting cramped with sitting. And first of all he strolled
|
|
with his hands in his pockets up to the crossing, where the girl
|
|
and her broom were to be found in all weathers. Just as he was
|
|
going to speak to her, a tall gentleman stepped upon the crossing.
|
|
He was pleased to find it so clean, for the streets were muddy,
|
|
and he had nice boots on; so he put his hand in his pocket,
|
|
and gave the girl a penny. But when she gave him a sweet smile
|
|
in return, and made him a pretty courtesy, he looked at her again,
|
|
and said:
|
|
|
|
"Where do you live, my child?"
|
|
|
|
"Paradise Row," she answered; "next door to the Adam and Eve--
|
|
down the area."
|
|
|
|
"Whom do you live with?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"My wicked old grannie," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"You shouldn't call your grannie wicked," said the gentleman.
|
|
|
|
"But she is," said the girl, looking up confidently in his face.
|
|
"If you don't believe me, you can come and take a look at her."
|
|
|
|
The words sounded rude, but the girl's face looked so simple
|
|
that the gentleman saw she did not mean to be rude, and became
|
|
still more interested in her.
|
|
|
|
"Still you shouldn't say so," he insisted.
|
|
|
|
"Shouldn't I? Everybody calls her wicked old grannie--even them
|
|
that's as wicked as her. You should hear her swear. There's nothing
|
|
like it in the Row. Indeed, I assure you, sir, there's ne'er
|
|
a one of them can shut my grannie up once she begins and gets
|
|
right a-going. You must put her in a passion first, you know.
|
|
It's no good till you do that--she's so old now. How she do make
|
|
them laugh, to be sure!"
|
|
|
|
Although she called her wicked, the child spoke so as plainly
|
|
to indicate pride in her grannie's pre-eminence in swearing.
|
|
|
|
The gentleman looked very grave to hear her, for he was sorry
|
|
that such a nice little girl should be in such bad keeping.
|
|
But he did not know what to say next, and stood for a moment
|
|
with his eyes on the ground. When he lifted them, he saw the face
|
|
of Diamond looking up in his.
|
|
|
|
"Please, sir," said Diamond, "her grannie's very cruel to her sometimes,
|
|
and shuts her out in the streets at night, if she happens to be late."
|
|
|
|
"Is this your brother?" asked the gentleman of the girl.
|
|
|
|
"No, sir."
|
|
|
|
"How does he know your grandmother, then? He does not look
|
|
like one of her sort."
|
|
|
|
"Oh no, sir! He's a good boy--quite."
|
|
|
|
Here she tapped her forehead with her finger in a significant manner.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by that?" asked the gentleman, while Diamond
|
|
looked on smiling.
|
|
|
|
"The cabbies call him God's baby," she whispered. "He's not right
|
|
in the head, you know. A tile loose."
|
|
|
|
Still Diamond, though he heard every word, and understood it too,
|
|
kept on smiling. What could it matter what people called him,
|
|
so long as he did nothing he ought not to do? And, besides, God's baby
|
|
was surely the best of names!
|
|
|
|
"Well, my little man, and what can you do?" asked the gentleman,
|
|
turning towards him--just for the sake of saying something.
|
|
|
|
"Drive a cab," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Good; and what else?" he continued; for, accepting what the girl
|
|
had said, he regarded the still sweetness of Diamond's face as a
|
|
sign of silliness, and wished to be kind to the poor little fellow.
|
|
|
|
"Nurse a baby," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well--and what else?"
|
|
|
|
"Clean father's boots, and make him a bit of toast for his tea."
|
|
|
|
"You're a useful little man," said the gentleman. "What else can
|
|
you do?"
|
|
|
|
"Not much that I know of," said Diamond. "I can't curry a horse,
|
|
except somebody puts me on his back. So I don't count that."
|
|
|
|
"Can you read?"
|
|
|
|
"No. But mother can and father can, and they're going to teach me
|
|
some day soon."
|
|
|
|
"Well, here's a penny for you."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir."
|
|
|
|
"And when you have learned to read, come to me, and I'll give you
|
|
sixpence and a book with fine pictures in it."
|
|
|
|
"Please, sir, where am I to come?" asked Diamond, who was too much
|
|
a man of the world not to know that he must have the gentleman's
|
|
address before he could go and see him.
|
|
|
|
"You're no such silly!" thought he, as he put his hand in his pocket,
|
|
and brought out a card. "There," he said, "your father will be able
|
|
to read that, and tell you where to go."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir. Thank you, sir," said Diamond, and put the card
|
|
in his pocket.
|
|
|
|
The gentleman walked away, but turning round a few paces off,
|
|
saw Diamond give his penny to the girl, and, walking slower heard
|
|
him say:
|
|
|
|
"I've got a father, and mother, and little brother, and you've got
|
|
nothing but a wicked old grannie. You may have my penny."
|
|
|
|
The girl put it beside the other in her pocket, the only trustworthy
|
|
article of dress she wore. Her grandmother always took care
|
|
that she had a stout pocket.
|
|
|
|
"Is she as cruel as ever?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Much the same. But I gets more coppers now than I used to, and I
|
|
can get summats to eat, and take browns enough home besides to keep
|
|
her from grumbling. It's a good thing she's so blind, though."
|
|
|
|
"Why?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"'Cause if she was as sharp in the eyes as she used to be, she would
|
|
find out I never eats her broken wittles, and then she'd know as I
|
|
must get something somewheres."
|
|
|
|
"Doesn't she watch you, then?"
|
|
|
|
"O' course she do. Don't she just! But I make believe and drop
|
|
it in my lap, and then hitch it into my pocket."
|
|
|
|
"What would she do if she found you out?"
|
|
|
|
"She never give me no more."
|
|
|
|
"But you don't want it!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do want it."
|
|
|
|
"What do you do with it, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Give it to cripple Jim."
|
|
|
|
"Who's cripple Jim?"
|
|
|
|
"A boy in the Row. His mother broke his leg when he wur a kid,
|
|
so he's never come to much; but he's a good boy, is Jim, and I love
|
|
Jim dearly. I always keeps off a penny for Jim--leastways as often
|
|
as I can.--But there I must sweep again, for them busses makes no
|
|
end o' dirt."
|
|
|
|
"Diamond! Diamond!" cried his father, who was afraid he might
|
|
get no good by talking to the girl; and Diamond obeyed, and got
|
|
up again upon the box. He told his father about the gentleman,
|
|
and what he had promised him if he would learn to read, and showed
|
|
him the gentleman's card.
|
|
|
|
"Why, it's not many doors from the Mews!" said his father, giving him
|
|
back the card. "Take care of it, my boy, for it may lead to something.
|
|
God knows, in these hard times a man wants as many friends as he's
|
|
ever likely to get."
|
|
|
|
"Haven't you got friends enough, father?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I have no right to complain; but the more the better,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
"Just let me count," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
And he took his hands from his pockets, and spreading out the fingers
|
|
of his left hand, began to count, beginning at the thumb.
|
|
|
|
"There's mother, first, and then baby, and then me. Next there's
|
|
old Diamond--and the cab--no, I won't count the cab, for it never
|
|
looks at you, and when Diamond's out of the shafts, it's nobody.
|
|
Then there's the man that drinks next door, and his wife,
|
|
and his baby."
|
|
|
|
"They're no friends of mine," said his father.
|
|
|
|
"Well, they're friends of mine," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
His father laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Much good they'll do you!" he said.
|
|
|
|
"How do you know they won't?" returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, go on," said his father.
|
|
|
|
"Then there's Jack and Mr. Stonecrop, and, deary me! not to
|
|
have mentioned Mr. Coleman and Mrs. Coleman, and Miss Coleman,
|
|
and Mrs. Crump. And then there's the clergyman that spoke
|
|
to me in the garden that day the tree was blown down."
|
|
|
|
"What's his name!"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know his name."
|
|
|
|
"Where does he live?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know."
|
|
|
|
"How can you count him, then?"
|
|
|
|
"He did talk to me, and very kindlike too."
|
|
|
|
His father laughed again.
|
|
|
|
"Why, child, you're just counting everybody you know. That don't
|
|
make 'em friends."
|
|
|
|
"Don't it? I thought it did. Well, but they shall be my friends.
|
|
I shall make 'em."
|
|
|
|
"How will you do that?"
|
|
|
|
"They can't help themselves then, if they would. If I choose
|
|
to be their friend, you know, they can't prevent me. Then there's
|
|
that girl at the crossing."
|
|
|
|
"A fine set of friends you do have, to be sure, Diamond!"
|
|
|
|
"Surely she's a friend anyhow, father. If it hadn't been for her,
|
|
you would never have got Mrs. Coleman and Miss Coleman to carry home."
|
|
|
|
His father was silent, for he saw that Diamond was right, and was
|
|
ashamed to find himself more ungrateful than he had thought.
|
|
|
|
"Then there's the new gentleman," Diamond went on.
|
|
|
|
"If he do as he say," interposed his father.
|
|
|
|
"And why shouldn't he? I daresay sixpence ain't too much for him
|
|
to spare. But I don't quite understand, father: is nobody your
|
|
friend but the one that does something for you?"
|
|
|
|
"No, I won't say that, my boy. You would have to leave out baby then."
|
|
|
|
"Oh no, I shouldn't. Baby can laugh in your face, and crow in your ears,
|
|
and make you feel so happy. Call you that nothing, father?"
|
|
|
|
The father's heart was fairly touched now. He made no answer
|
|
to this last appeal, and Diamond ended off with saying:
|
|
|
|
"And there's the best of mine to come yet--and that's you, daddy--
|
|
except it be mother, you know. You're my friend, daddy, ain't you?
|
|
And I'm your friend, ain't I?"
|
|
|
|
"And God for us all," said his father, and then they were both
|
|
silent for that was very solemn.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND LEARNS TO READ
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE question of the tall gentleman as to whether Diamond could
|
|
read or not set his father thinking it was high time he could;
|
|
and as soon as old Diamond was suppered and bedded, he began the
|
|
task that very night. But it was not much of a task to Diamond,
|
|
for his father took for his lesson-book those very rhymes his mother
|
|
had picked up on the sea-shore; and as Diamond was not beginning
|
|
too soon, he learned very fast indeed. Within a month he was able
|
|
to spell out most of the verses for himself.
|
|
|
|
But he had never come upon the poem he thought he had heard his
|
|
mother read from it that day. He had looked through and through
|
|
the book several times after he knew the letters and a few words,
|
|
fancying he could tell the look of it, but had always failed to find
|
|
one more like it than another. So he wisely gave up the search till
|
|
he could really read. Then he resolved to begin at the beginning,
|
|
and read them all straight through. This took him nearly a fortnight.
|
|
When he had almost reached the end, he came upon the following verses,
|
|
which took his fancy much, although they were certainly not very
|
|
like those he was in search of.
|
|
|
|
|
|
LITTLE BOY BLUE
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue lost his way in a wood.
|
|
Sing apples and cherries, roses and honey;
|
|
He said, "I would not go back if I could,
|
|
It's all so jolly and funny."
|
|
|
|
He sang, "This wood is all my own,
|
|
Apples and cherries, roses and honey;
|
|
So here I'll sit, like a king on my throne,
|
|
All so jolly and funny."
|
|
|
|
A little snake crept out of the tree,
|
|
Apples and cherries, roses and honey;
|
|
"Lie down at my feet, little snake," said he,
|
|
All so jolly and funny.
|
|
|
|
A little bird sang in the tree overhead,
|
|
Apples and cherries, roses and honey;
|
|
"Come and sing your song on my finger instead,
|
|
All so jolly and funny."
|
|
|
|
The snake coiled up; and the bird flew down,
|
|
And sang him the song of Birdie Brown.
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue found it tiresome to sit,
|
|
And he thought he had better walk on a bit.
|
|
|
|
So up he got, his way to take,
|
|
And he said, "Come along, little bird and snake."
|
|
|
|
And waves of snake o'er the damp leaves passed,
|
|
And the snake went first and Birdie Brown last;
|
|
|
|
By Boy Blue's head, with flutter and dart,
|
|
Flew Birdie Brown with its song in its heart.
|
|
|
|
He came where the apples grew red and sweet:
|
|
"Tree, drop me an apple down at my feet."
|
|
|
|
He came where the cherries hung plump and red:
|
|
"Come to my mouth, sweet kisses," he said.
|
|
|
|
And the boughs bow down, and the apples they dapple
|
|
The grass, too many for him to grapple.
|
|
|
|
And the cheeriest cherries, with never a miss,
|
|
Fall to his mouth, each a full-grown kiss.
|
|
|
|
He met a little brook singing a song.
|
|
He said, "Little brook, you are going wrong.
|
|
|
|
"You must follow me, follow me, follow, I say
|
|
Do as I tell you, and come this way."
|
|
|
|
And the song-singing, sing-songing forest brook
|
|
Leaped from its bed and after him took,
|
|
|
|
Followed him, followed. And pale and wan,
|
|
The dead leaves rustled as the water ran.
|
|
|
|
And every bird high up on the bough,
|
|
And every creature low down below,
|
|
|
|
He called, and the creatures obeyed the call,
|
|
Took their legs and their wings and followed him all;
|
|
|
|
Squirrels that carried their tails like a sack,
|
|
Each on his own little humpy brown back;
|
|
|
|
Householder snails, and slugs all tails,
|
|
And butterflies, flutterbies, ships all sails;
|
|
|
|
And weasels, and ousels, and mice, and larks,
|
|
And owls, and rere-mice, and harkydarks,
|
|
|
|
All went running, and creeping, and flowing,
|
|
After the merry boy fluttering and going;
|
|
|
|
The dappled fawns fawning, the fallow-deer following,
|
|
The swallows and flies, flying and swallowing;
|
|
|
|
Cockchafers, henchafers, cockioli-birds,
|
|
Cockroaches, henroaches, cuckoos in herds.
|
|
|
|
The spider forgot and followed him spinning,
|
|
And lost all his thread from end to beginning.
|
|
|
|
The gay wasp forgot his rings and his waist,
|
|
He never had made such undignified haste.
|
|
|
|
The dragon-flies melted to mist with their hurrying.
|
|
The mole in his moleskins left his barrowing burrowing.
|
|
|
|
The bees went buzzing, so busy and beesy,
|
|
And the midges in columns so upright and easy.
|
|
|
|
But Little Boy Blue was not content,
|
|
Calling for followers still as he went,
|
|
|
|
Blowing his horn, and beating his drum,
|
|
And crying aloud, "Come all of you, come!"
|
|
|
|
He said to the shadows, "Come after me;"
|
|
And the shadows began to flicker and flee,
|
|
|
|
And they flew through the wood all flattering and fluttering,
|
|
Over the dead leaves flickering and muttering.
|
|
|
|
And he said to the wind, "Come, follow; come, follow,
|
|
With whistle and pipe, and rustle and hollo."
|
|
|
|
And the wind wound round at his desire,
|
|
As if he had been the gold cock on the spire.
|
|
|
|
And the cock itself flew down from the church,
|
|
And left the farmers all in the lurch.
|
|
|
|
They run and they fly, they creep and they come,
|
|
Everything, everything, all and some.
|
|
|
|
The very trees they tugged at their roots,
|
|
Only their feet were too fast in their boots,
|
|
|
|
After him leaning and straining and bending,
|
|
As on through their boles he kept walking and wending,
|
|
|
|
Till out of the wood he burst on a lea,
|
|
Shouting and calling, "Come after me!"
|
|
|
|
And then they rose up with a leafy hiss,
|
|
And stood as if nothing had been amiss.
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue sat down on a stone,
|
|
And the creatures came round him every one.
|
|
|
|
And he said to the clouds, "I want you there."
|
|
And down they sank through the thin blue air.
|
|
|
|
And he said to the sunset far in the West,
|
|
"Come here; I want you; I know best."
|
|
|
|
And the sunset came and stood up on the wold,
|
|
And burned and glowed in purple and gold.
|
|
|
|
Then Little Boy Blue began to ponder:
|
|
"What's to be done with them all, I wonder."
|
|
|
|
Then Little Boy Blue, he said, quite low,
|
|
"What to do with you all I am sure I don't know."
|
|
|
|
Then the clouds clodded down till dismal it grew;
|
|
The snake sneaked close; round Birdie Brown flew;
|
|
|
|
The brook sat up like a snake on its tail;
|
|
And the wind came up with a what-will-you wail;
|
|
|
|
And all the creatures sat and stared;
|
|
The mole opened his very eyes and glared;
|
|
|
|
And for rats and bats and the world and his wife,
|
|
Little Boy Blue was afraid of his life.
|
|
|
|
Then Birdie Brown began to sing,
|
|
And what he sang was the very thing:
|
|
|
|
"You have brought us all hither, Little Boy Blue,
|
|
Pray what do you want us all to do?"
|
|
|
|
"Go away! go away!" said Little Boy Blue;
|
|
"I'm sure I don't want you -- get away -- do."
|
|
|
|
"No, no; no, no; no, yes, and no, no,"
|
|
Sang Birdie Brown, "it mustn't be so.
|
|
|
|
"We cannot for nothing come here, and away.
|
|
Give us some work, or else we stay."
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear! and oh dear!" with sob and with sigh,
|
|
Said Little Boy Blue, and began to cry.
|
|
|
|
But before he got far, he thought of a thing;
|
|
And up he stood, and spoke like a king.
|
|
|
|
"Why do you hustle and jostle and bother?
|
|
Off with you all! Take me back to my mother."
|
|
|
|
The sunset stood at the gates of the west.
|
|
"Follow me, follow me" came from Birdie Brown's breast.
|
|
|
|
"I am going that way as fast as I can,"
|
|
Said the brook, as it sank and turned and ran.
|
|
|
|
Back to the woods fled the shadows like ghosts:
|
|
"If we stay, we shall all be missed from our posts."
|
|
|
|
Said the wind with a voice that had changed its cheer,
|
|
"I was just going there, when you brought me here."
|
|
|
|
"That's where I live," said the sack-backed squirrel,
|
|
And he turned his sack with a swing and a swirl.
|
|
|
|
Said the cock of the spire, "His father's churchwarden."
|
|
Said the brook running faster, "I run through his garden."
|
|
|
|
Said the mole, "Two hundred worms -- there I caught 'em
|
|
Last year, and I'm going again next autumn."
|
|
|
|
Said they all, "If that's where you want us to steer for,
|
|
What in earth or in water did you bring us here for?"
|
|
|
|
"Never you mind," said Little Boy Blue;
|
|
"That's what I tell you. If that you won't do,
|
|
|
|
"I'll get up at once, and go home without you.
|
|
I think I will; I begin to doubt you."
|
|
|
|
He rose; and up rose the snake on its tail,
|
|
And hissed three times, half a hiss, half a wail.
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue he tried to go past him;
|
|
But wherever he turned, sat the snake and faced him.
|
|
|
|
"If you don't get out of my way," he said,
|
|
"I tell you, snake, I will break your head."
|
|
|
|
The snake he neither would go nor come;
|
|
So he hit him hard with the stick of his drum.
|
|
|
|
The snake fell down as if he were dead,
|
|
And Little Boy Blue set his foot on his head.
|
|
|
|
And all the creatures they marched before him,
|
|
And marshalled him home with a high cockolorum.
|
|
|
|
And Birdie Brown sang Twirrrr twitter twirrrr twee --
|
|
Apples and cherries, roses and honey;
|
|
Little Boy Blue has listened to me --
|
|
All so jolly and funny.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI
|
|
|
|
SAL'S NANNY
|
|
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND managed with many blunders to read this rhyme to his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Isn't it nice, mother?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it's pretty," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"I think it means something," returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sure I don't know what," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I wonder if it's the same boy--yes, it must be the same--
|
|
Little Boy Blue, you know. Let me see--how does that rhyme go?
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue, come blow me your horn--
|
|
|
|
Yes, of course it is--for this one went `blowing his horn and beating
|
|
his drum.' He had a drum too.
|
|
|
|
Little Boy Blue, come blow me your horn;
|
|
The sheep's in the meadow, the cow's in the corn,
|
|
|
|
He had to keep them out, you know. But he wasn't minding his work.
|
|
It goes--
|
|
|
|
Where's the little boy that looks after the sheep?
|
|
He's under the haystack, fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
There, you see, mother! And then, let me see--
|
|
|
|
Who'll go and wake him? No, not I;
|
|
For if I do, he'll be sure to cry.
|
|
|
|
So I suppose nobody did wake him. He was a rather cross little boy,
|
|
I daresay, when woke up. And when he did wake of himself, and saw
|
|
the mischief the cow had done to the corn, instead of running
|
|
home to his mother, he ran away into the wood and lost himself.
|
|
Don't you think that's very likely, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"I shouldn't wonder," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"So you see he was naughty; for even when he lost himself he
|
|
did not want to go home. Any of the creatures would have shown
|
|
him the way if he had asked it--all but the snake. He followed
|
|
the snake, you know, and he took him farther away. I suppose it
|
|
was a young one of the same serpent that tempted Adam and Eve.
|
|
Father was telling us about it last Sunday, you remember."
|
|
|
|
"Bless the child!" said his mother to herself; and then added aloud,
|
|
finding that Diamond did not go on, "Well, what next?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know, mother. I'm sure there's a great deal more,
|
|
but what it is I can't say. I only know that he killed the snake.
|
|
I suppose that's what he had a drumstick for. He couldn't do it
|
|
with his horn."
|
|
|
|
"But surely you're not such a silly as to take it all for true, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"I think it must be. It looks true. That killing of the snake
|
|
looks true. It's what I've got to do so often."
|
|
|
|
His mother looked uneasy. Diamond smiled full in her face,
|
|
and added--
|
|
|
|
"When baby cries and won't be happy, and when father and you talk
|
|
about your troubles, I mean."
|
|
|
|
This did little to reassure his mother; and lest my reader should
|
|
have his qualms about it too, I venture to remind him once more
|
|
that Diamond had been to the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
Finding she made no reply, Diamond went on--
|
|
|
|
"In a week or so, I shall be able to go to the tall gentleman
|
|
and tell him I can read. And I'll ask him if he can help
|
|
me to understand the rhyme."
|
|
|
|
But before the week was out, he had another reason for going
|
|
to Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
For three days, on each of which, at one time or other, Diamond's
|
|
father was on the same stand near the National Gallery, the girl
|
|
was not at her crossing, and Diamond got quite anxious about her,
|
|
fearing she must be ill. On the fourth day, not seeing her yet,
|
|
he said to his father, who had that moment shut the door of his cab
|
|
upon a fare--
|
|
|
|
"Father, I want to go and look after the girl, She can't be well."
|
|
|
|
"All right," said his father. "Only take care of yourself, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
So saying he climbed on his box and drove off.
|
|
|
|
He had great confidence in his boy, you see, and would trust
|
|
him anywhere. But if he had known the kind of place in which
|
|
the girl lived, he would perhaps have thought twice before he
|
|
allowed him to go alone. Diamond, who did know something of it,
|
|
had not, however, any fear. From talking to the girl he had
|
|
a good notion of where about it was, and he remembered the
|
|
address well enough; so by asking his way some twenty times,
|
|
mostly of policemen, he came at length pretty near the place.
|
|
The last policeman he questioned looked down upon him from the summit
|
|
of six feet two inches, and replied with another question, but kindly:
|
|
|
|
"What do you want there, my small kid? It ain't where you was bred,
|
|
I guess."
|
|
|
|
"No sir" answered Diamond. "I live in Bloomsbury."
|
|
|
|
"That's a long way off," said the policeman.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it's a good distance," answered Diamond; "but I find my way
|
|
about pretty well. Policemen are always kind to me."
|
|
|
|
"But what on earth do you want here?"
|
|
|
|
Diamond told him plainly what he was about, and of course the man
|
|
believed him, for nobody ever disbelieved Diamond. People might
|
|
think he was mistaken, but they never thought he was telling a story.
|
|
|
|
"It's an ugly place," said the policeman.
|
|
|
|
"Is it far off?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No. It's next door almost. But it's not safe."
|
|
|
|
"Nobody hurts me," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I must go with you, I suppose."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no! please not," said Diamond. "They might think I was going
|
|
to meddle with them, and I ain't, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Well, do as you please," said the man, and gave him full directions.
|
|
|
|
Diamond set off, never suspecting that the policeman, who was a
|
|
kind-hearted man, with children of his own, was following him close,
|
|
and watching him round every corner. As he went on, all at once
|
|
he thought he remembered the place, and whether it really was so,
|
|
or only that he had laid up the policeman's instructions well in
|
|
his mind, he went straight for the cellar of old Sal.
|
|
|
|
"He's a sharp little kid, anyhow, for as simple as he looks,"
|
|
said the man to himself. "Not a wrong turn does he take!
|
|
But old Sal's a rum un for such a child to pay a morning visit to.
|
|
She's worse when she's sober than when she's half drunk. I've seen
|
|
her when she'd have torn him in pieces."
|
|
|
|
Happily then for Diamond, old Sal had gone out to get some gin.
|
|
When he came to her door at the bottom of the area-stair and knocked,
|
|
he received no answer. He laid his ear to the door, and thought he heard
|
|
a moaning within. So he tried the door, and found it was not locked!
|
|
It was a dreary place indeed,--and very dark, for the window was below
|
|
the level of the street, and covered with mud, while over the grating
|
|
which kept people from falling into the area, stood a chest of drawers,
|
|
placed there by a dealer in second-hand furniture, which shut out
|
|
almost all the light. And the smell in the place was dreadful.
|
|
Diamond stood still for a while, for he could see next to nothing,
|
|
but he heard the moaning plainly enough now, When he got used
|
|
to the darkness, he discovered his friend lying with closed eyes
|
|
and a white suffering face on a heap of little better than rags in
|
|
a corner of the den. He went up to her and spoke; but she made him
|
|
no answer. Indeed, she was not in the least aware of his presence,
|
|
and Diamond saw that he could do nothing for her without help.
|
|
So taking a lump of barley-sugar from his pocket, which he had bought
|
|
for her as he came along, and laying it beside her, he left the place,
|
|
having already made up his mind to go and see the tall gentleman,
|
|
Mr. Raymond, and ask him to do something for Sal's Nanny, as the girl
|
|
was called.
|
|
|
|
By the time he got up the area-steps, three or four women who had
|
|
seen him go down were standing together at the top waiting for him.
|
|
They wanted his clothes for their children; but they did not follow
|
|
him down lest Sal should find them there. The moment he appeared,
|
|
they laid their hands on him, and all began talking at once,
|
|
for each wanted to get some advantage over her neighbours.
|
|
He told them quite quietly, for he was not frightened, that he
|
|
had come to see what was the matter with Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"What do you know about Nanny?" said one of them fiercely. "Wait till
|
|
old Sal comes home, and you'll catch it, for going prying into her
|
|
house when she's out. If you don't give me your jacket directly,
|
|
I'll go and fetch her."
|
|
|
|
"I can't give you my jacket," said Diamond. "It belongs to my
|
|
father and mother, you know. It's not mine to give. Is it now?
|
|
You would not think it right to give away what wasn't yours--
|
|
would you now?"
|
|
|
|
"Give it away! No, that I wouldn't; I'd keep it," she said,
|
|
with a rough laugh. "But if the jacket ain't yours, what right have
|
|
you to keep it? Here, Cherry, make haste. It'll be one go apiece."
|
|
|
|
They all began to tug at the jacket, while Diamond stooped and kept
|
|
his arms bent to resist them. Before they had done him or the jacket
|
|
any harm, however, suddenly they all scampered away; and Diamond,
|
|
looking in the opposite direction, saw the tall policeman coming
|
|
towards him.
|
|
|
|
"You had better have let me come with you, little man," he said,
|
|
looking down in Diamond's face, which was flushed with his resistance.
|
|
|
|
"You came just in the right time, thank you," returned Diamond.
|
|
"They've done me no harm."
|
|
|
|
"They would have if I hadn't been at hand, though."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but you were at hand, you know, so they couldn't."
|
|
|
|
Perhaps the answer was deeper in purport than either Diamond
|
|
or the policeman knew. They walked away together, Diamond telling
|
|
his new friend how ill poor Nanny was, and that he was going to let
|
|
the tall gentleman know. The policeman put him in the nearest way
|
|
for Bloomsbury, and stepping out in good earnest, Diamond reached
|
|
Mr. Raymond's door in less than an hour. When he asked if he
|
|
was at home, the servant, in return, asked what he wanted.
|
|
|
|
"I want to tell him something."
|
|
|
|
"But I can't go and trouble him with such a message as that."
|
|
|
|
"He told me to come to him--that is, when I could read--and I can."
|
|
|
|
"How am I to know that?"
|
|
|
|
Diamond stared with astonishment for one moment, then answered:
|
|
|
|
"Why, I've just told you. That's how you know it."
|
|
|
|
But this man was made of coarser grain than the policeman,
|
|
and, instead of seeing that Diamond could not tell a lie,
|
|
he put his answer down as impudence, and saying, "Do you
|
|
think I'm going to take your word for it?" shut the door in his face.
|
|
|
|
Diamond turned and sat down on the doorstep, thinking with himself
|
|
that the tall gentleman must either come in or come out, and he
|
|
was therefore in the best possible position for finding him.
|
|
He had not waited long before the door opened again; but when he
|
|
looked round, it was only the servant once more.
|
|
|
|
"Get, away" he said. "What are you doing on the doorstep?"
|
|
|
|
"Waiting for Mr. Raymond," answered Diamond, getting up.
|
|
|
|
"He's not at home."
|
|
|
|
"Then I'll wait till he comes," returned Diamond, sitting down again
|
|
with a smile.
|
|
|
|
What the man would have done next I do not know, but a step
|
|
sounded from the hall, and when Diamond looked round yet again,
|
|
there was the tall gentleman.
|
|
|
|
"Who's this, John?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know, sir. An imperent little boy as will sit on the doorstep."
|
|
|
|
"Please sir" said Diamond, "he told me you weren't at home, and I
|
|
sat down to wait for you."
|
|
|
|
"Eh, what!" said Mr. Raymond. "John! John! This won't do.
|
|
Is it a habit of yours to turn away my visitors? There'll be some
|
|
one else to turn away, I'm afraid, if I find any more of this kind
|
|
of thing. Come in, my little man. I suppose you've come to claim
|
|
your sixpence?"
|
|
|
|
"No, sir, not that."
|
|
|
|
"What! can't you read yet?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I can now, a little. But I'll come for that next time.
|
|
I came to tell you about Sal's Nanny."
|
|
|
|
"Who's Sal's Nanny?"
|
|
|
|
"The girl at the crossing you talked to the same day."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes; I remember. What's the matter? Has she got run over?"
|
|
|
|
Then Diamond told him all.
|
|
|
|
Now Mr. Raymond was one of the kindest men in London. He sent at
|
|
once to have the horse put to the brougham, took Diamond with him,
|
|
and drove to the Children's Hospital. There he was well known
|
|
to everybody, for he was not only a large subscriber, but he used
|
|
to go and tell the children stories of an afternoon. One of the
|
|
doctors promised to go and find Nanny, and do what could be done--
|
|
have her brought to the hospital, if possible.
|
|
|
|
That same night they sent a litter for her, and as she could
|
|
be of no use to old Sal until she was better, she did not object
|
|
to having her removed. So she was soon lying in the fever ward--
|
|
for the first time in her life in a nice clean bed. But she knew
|
|
nothing of the whole affair. She was too ill to know anything.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII
|
|
|
|
MR. RAYMOND'S RIDDLE
|
|
|
|
|
|
MR. RAYMOND took Diamond home with him, stopping at the Mews
|
|
to tell his mother that he would send him back soon. Diamond ran
|
|
in with the message himself, and when he reappeared he had in his
|
|
hand the torn and crumpled book which North Wind had given him.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! I see," said Mr. Raymond: "you are going to claim your
|
|
sixpence now."
|
|
|
|
"I wasn't thinking of that so much as of another thing," said Diamond.
|
|
"There's a rhyme in this book I can't quite understand. I want you
|
|
to tell me what it means, if you please."
|
|
|
|
"I will if I can," answered Mr. Raymond. "You shall read it to me
|
|
when we get home, and then I shall see."
|
|
|
|
Still with a good many blunders, Diamond did read it after a fashion.
|
|
Mr. Raymond took the little book and read it over again.
|
|
|
|
Now Mr. Raymond was a poet himself, and so, although he had never
|
|
been at the back of the north wind, he was able to understand the
|
|
poem pretty well. But before saying anything about it, he read it
|
|
over aloud, and Diamond thought he understood it much better already.
|
|
|
|
"I'll tell you what I think it means," he then said. "It means
|
|
that people may have their way for a while, if they like, but it
|
|
will get them into such troubles they'll wish they hadn't had it."
|
|
|
|
"I know, I know!" said Diamond. "Like the poor cabman next door.
|
|
He drinks too much."
|
|
|
|
"Just so," returned Mr. Raymond. "But when people want to do right,
|
|
things about them will try to help them. Only they must kill
|
|
the snake, you know."
|
|
|
|
"I was sure the snake had something to do with it,"
|
|
cried Diamond triumphantly.
|
|
|
|
A good deal more talk followed, and Mr. Raymond gave Diamond
|
|
his sixpence.
|
|
|
|
"What will you do with it?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Take it home to my mother," he answered. "She has a teapot--
|
|
such a black one!--with a broken spout, and she keeps all her money
|
|
in it. It ain't much; but she saves it up to buy shoes for me.
|
|
And there's baby coming on famously, and he'll want shoes soon.
|
|
And every sixpence is something--ain't it, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"To be sure, my man. I hope you'll always make as good a use
|
|
of your money."
|
|
|
|
"I hope so, sir," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"And here's a book for you, full of pictures and stories and poems.
|
|
I wrote it myself, chiefly for the children of the hospital where
|
|
I hope Nanny is going. I don't mean I printed it, you know.
|
|
I made it," added Mr. Raymond, wishing Diamond to understand that he
|
|
was the author of the book.
|
|
|
|
"I know what you mean. I make songs myself. They're awfully silly,
|
|
but they please baby, and that's all they're meant for."
|
|
|
|
"Couldn't you let me hear one of them now?" said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"No, sir, I couldn't. I forget them as soon as I've done with them.
|
|
Besides, I couldn't make a line without baby on my knee. We make
|
|
them together, you know. They're just as much baby's as mine.
|
|
It's he that pulls them out of me."
|
|
|
|
"I suspect the child's a genius," said the poet to himself,
|
|
"and that's what makes people think him silly."
|
|
|
|
Now if any of my child readers want to know what a genius is--
|
|
shall I try to tell them, or shall I not? I will give them one
|
|
very short answer: it means one who understands things without
|
|
any other body telling him what they mean. God makes a few such
|
|
now and then to teach the rest of us.
|
|
|
|
"Do you like riddles?" asked Mr. Raymond, turning over the leaves
|
|
of his own book.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what a riddle is," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"It's something that means something else, and you've got to find
|
|
out what the something else is."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Raymond liked the old-fashioned riddle best, and had written a few--
|
|
one of which he now read.
|
|
|
|
I have only one foot, but thousands of toes;
|
|
My one foot stands, but never goes.
|
|
I have many arms, and they're mighty all;
|
|
And hundreds of fingers, large and small.
|
|
From the ends of my fingers my beauty grows.
|
|
I breathe with my hair, and I drink with my toes.
|
|
I grow bigger and bigger about the waist,
|
|
And yet I am always very tight laced.
|
|
None e'er saw me eat -- I've no mouth to bite;
|
|
Yet I eat all day in the full sunlight.
|
|
In the summer with song I shave and quiver,
|
|
But in winter I fast and groan and shiver.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Do you know what that means, Diamond?" he asked, when he had finished.
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed, I don't," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Then you can read it for yourself, and think over it, and see
|
|
if you can find out," said Mr. Raymond, giving him the book.
|
|
"And now you had better go home to your mother. When you've found
|
|
the riddle, you can come again."
|
|
|
|
If Diamond had had to find out the riddle in order to see
|
|
Mr. Raymond again, I doubt if he would ever have seen him.
|
|
|
|
"Oh then," I think I hear some little reader say, "he could not have
|
|
been a genius, for a genius finds out things without being told."
|
|
|
|
I answer, "Genius finds out truths, not tricks." And if you do
|
|
not understand that, I am afraid you must be content to wait till
|
|
you grow older and know more.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII
|
|
|
|
THE EARLY BIRD
|
|
|
|
|
|
WHEN Diamond got home he found his father at home already, sitting by
|
|
the fire and looking rather miserable, for his head ached and he
|
|
felt sick. He had been doing night work of late, and it had not agreed
|
|
with him, so he had given it up, but not in time, for he had taken
|
|
some kind of fever. The next day he was forced to keep his bed,
|
|
and his wife nursed him, and Diamond attended to the baby. If he
|
|
had not been ill, it would have been delightful to have him at home;
|
|
and the first day Diamond sang more songs than ever to the baby,
|
|
and his father listened with some pleasure. But the next he could
|
|
not bear even Diamond's sweet voice, and was very ill indeed;
|
|
so Diamond took the baby into his own room, and had no end of quiet
|
|
games with him there. If he did pull all his bedding on the floor,
|
|
it did not matter, for he kept baby very quiet, and made the bed
|
|
himself again, and slept in it with baby all the next night, and many
|
|
nights after.
|
|
|
|
But long before his father got well, his mother's savings were
|
|
all but gone. She did not say a word about it in the hearing
|
|
of her husband, lest she should distress him; and one night,
|
|
when she could not help crying, she came into Diamond's room that
|
|
his father might not hear her. She thought Diamond was asleep,
|
|
but he was not. When he heard her sobbing, he was frightened,
|
|
and said--
|
|
|
|
"Is father worse, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"No, Diamond," she answered, as well as she could; "he's a good
|
|
bit better."
|
|
|
|
"Then what are you crying for, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"Because my money is almost all gone," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"O mammy, you make me think of a little poem baby and I learned
|
|
out of North Wind's book to-day. Don't you remember how I bothered
|
|
you about some of the words?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, child," said his mother heedlessly, thinking only of what she
|
|
should do after to-morrow.
|
|
|
|
Diamond began and repeated the poem, for he had a wonderful memory.
|
|
|
|
A little bird sat on the edge of her nest;
|
|
Her yellow-beaks slept as sound as tops;
|
|
That day she had done her very best,
|
|
And had filled every one of their little crops.
|
|
She had filled her own just over-full,
|
|
And hence she was feeling a little dull.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, dear!" she sighed, as she sat with her head
|
|
Sunk in her chest, and no neck at all,
|
|
While her crop stuck out like a feather bed
|
|
Turned inside out, and rather small;
|
|
"What shall I do if things don't reform?
|
|
I don't know where there's a single worm.
|
|
|
|
"I've had twenty to-day, and the children five each,
|
|
Besides a few flies, and some very fat spiders:
|
|
No one will say I don't do as I preach --
|
|
I'm one of the best of bird-providers;
|
|
But where's the use? We want a storm --
|
|
I don't know where there's a single worm."
|
|
|
|
"There's five in my crop," said a wee, wee bird,
|
|
Which woke at the voice of his mother's pain;
|
|
"I know where there's five." And with the word
|
|
He tucked in his head, and went off again.
|
|
"The folly of childhood," sighed his mother,
|
|
"Has always been my especial bother."
|
|
|
|
The yellow-beaks they slept on and on --
|
|
They never had heard of the bogy To-morrow;
|
|
But the mother sat outside, making her moan --
|
|
She'll soon have to beg, or steal, or borrow.
|
|
For she never can tell the night before,
|
|
Where she shall find one red worm more.
|
|
|
|
The fact, as I say, was, she'd had too many;
|
|
She couldn't sleep, and she called it virtue,
|
|
Motherly foresight, affection, any
|
|
Name you may call it that will not hurt you,
|
|
So it was late ere she tucked her head in,
|
|
And she slept so late it was almost a sin.
|
|
|
|
But the little fellow who knew of five
|
|
Nor troubled his head about any more,
|
|
Woke very early, felt quite alive,
|
|
And wanted a sixth to add to his store:
|
|
He pushed his mother, the greedy elf,
|
|
Then thought he had better try for himself.
|
|
|
|
When his mother awoke and had rubbed her eyes,
|
|
Feeling less like a bird, and more like a mole,
|
|
She saw him -- fancy with what surprise --
|
|
Dragging a huge worm out of a hole!
|
|
'Twas of this same hero the proverb took form:
|
|
'Tis the early bird that catches the worm.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"There, mother!" said Diamond, as he finished; "ain't it funny?"
|
|
|
|
"I wish you were like that little bird, Diamond, and could catch
|
|
worms for yourself," said his mother, as she rose to go and look
|
|
after her husband.
|
|
|
|
Diamond lay awake for a few minutes, thinking what he could do
|
|
to catch worms. It was very little trouble to make up his mind,
|
|
however, and still less to go to sleep after it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV
|
|
|
|
ANOTHER EARLY BIRD
|
|
|
|
|
|
HE GOT up in the morning as soon as he heard the men moving
|
|
in the yard. He tucked in his little brother so that he could
|
|
not tumble out of bed, and then went out, leaving the door open,
|
|
so that if he should cry his mother might hear him at once.
|
|
When he got into the yard he found the stable-door just opened.
|
|
|
|
"I'm the early bird, I think," he said to himself. "I hope I shall
|
|
catch the worm."
|
|
|
|
He would not ask any one to help him, fearing his project might meet
|
|
with disapproval and opposition. With great difficulty, but with the
|
|
help of a broken chair he brought down from his bedroom, he managed
|
|
to put the harness on Diamond. If the old horse had had the least
|
|
objection to the proceeding, of course he could not have done it;
|
|
but even when it came to the bridle, he opened his mouth for the bit,
|
|
just as if he had been taking the apple which Diamond sometimes gave him.
|
|
He fastened the cheek-strap very carefully, just in the usual hole,
|
|
for fear of choking his friend, or else letting the bit get amongst
|
|
his teeth. It was a job to get the saddle on; but with the chair
|
|
he managed it. If old Diamond had had an education in physics
|
|
to equal that of the camel, he would have knelt down to let him put
|
|
it on his back, but that was more than could be expected of him,
|
|
and then Diamond had to creep quite under him to get hold of
|
|
the girth. The collar was almost the worst part of the business;
|
|
but there Diamond could help Diamond. He held his head very low
|
|
till his little master had got it over and turned it round,
|
|
and then he lifted his head, and shook it on to his shoulders.
|
|
The yoke was rather difficult; but when he had laid the traces
|
|
over the horse's neck, the weight was not too much for him.
|
|
He got him right at last, and led him out of the stable.
|
|
|
|
By this time there were several of the men watching him, but they
|
|
would not interfere, they were so anxious to see how he would get
|
|
over the various difficulties. They followed him as far as the
|
|
stable-door, and there stood watching him again as he put the horse
|
|
between the shafts, got them up one after the other into the loops,
|
|
fastened the traces, the belly-band, the breeching, and the reins.
|
|
|
|
Then he got his whip. The moment he mounted the box, the men
|
|
broke into a hearty cheer of delight at his success. But they
|
|
would not let him go without a general inspection of the harness;
|
|
and although they found it right, for not a buckle had to be shifted,
|
|
they never allowed him to do it for himself again all the time his
|
|
father was ill.
|
|
|
|
The cheer brought his mother to the window, and there she saw her
|
|
little boy setting out alone with the cab in the gray of morning.
|
|
She tugged at the window, but it was stiff; and before she could
|
|
open it, Diamond, who was in a great hurry, was out of the mews,
|
|
and almost out of the street. She called "Diamond! Diamond!" but there
|
|
was no answer except from Jack.
|
|
|
|
"Never fear for him, ma'am," said Jack. "It 'ud be only a devil
|
|
as would hurt him, and there ain't so many o' them as some folk
|
|
'ud have you believe. A boy o' Diamond's size as can 'arness
|
|
a 'oss t'other Diamond's size, and put him to, right as a trivet--
|
|
if he do upset the keb--'ll fall on his feet, ma'am."
|
|
|
|
"But he won't upset the cab, will he, Jack?"
|
|
|
|
"Not he, ma'am. Leastways he won't go for to do it."
|
|
|
|
"I know as much as that myself. What do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"I mean he's a little likely to do it as the oldest man in the stable.
|
|
How's the gov'nor to-day, ma'am?"
|
|
|
|
"A good deal better, thank you," she answered, closing the window
|
|
in some fear lest her husband should have been made anxious by
|
|
the news of Diamond's expedition. He knew pretty well, however,
|
|
what his boy was capable of, and although not quite easy was less
|
|
anxious than his mother. But as the evening drew on, the anxiety
|
|
of both of them increased, and every sound of wheels made his
|
|
father raise himself in his bed, and his mother peep out of the window.
|
|
|
|
Diamond had resolved to go straight to the cab-stand where he was
|
|
best known, and never to crawl for fear of getting annoyed by idlers.
|
|
Before he got across Oxford Street, however, he was hailed by a man
|
|
who wanted to catch a train, and was in too great a hurry to think
|
|
about the driver. Having carried him to King's Cross in good time,
|
|
and got a good fare in return, he set off again in great spirits,
|
|
and reached the stand in safety. He was the first there after all.
|
|
|
|
As the men arrived they all greeted him kindly, and inquired after
|
|
his father.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't you afraid of the old 'oss running away with you?" asked one.
|
|
|
|
"No, he wouldn't run away with me," answered Diamond. "He knows
|
|
I'm getting the shillings for father. Or if he did he would only
|
|
run home."
|
|
|
|
"Well, you're a plucky one, for all your girl's looks!" said the man;
|
|
"and I wish ye luck."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir," said Diamond. "I'll do what I can. I came
|
|
to the old place, you see, because I knew you would let me have
|
|
my turn here."
|
|
|
|
In the course of the day one man did try to cut him out, but he
|
|
was a stranger; and the shout the rest of them raised let him see
|
|
it would not do, and made him so far ashamed besides, that he went
|
|
away crawling.
|
|
|
|
Once, in a block, a policeman came up to him, and asked him for
|
|
his number. Diamond showed him his father's badge, saying with a smile:
|
|
|
|
"Father's ill at home, and so I came out with the cab. There's no
|
|
fear of me. I can drive. Besides, the old horse could go alone."
|
|
|
|
"Just as well, I daresay. You're a pair of 'em. But you are
|
|
a rum 'un for a cabby--ain't you now?" said the policeman.
|
|
"I don't know as I ought to let you go."
|
|
|
|
"I ain't done nothing," said Diamond. "It's not my fault I'm
|
|
no bigger. I'm big enough for my age."
|
|
|
|
"That's where it is," said the man. "You ain't fit."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that?" asked Diamond, with his usual smile,
|
|
and turning his head like a little bird.
|
|
|
|
"Why, how are you to get out of this ruck now, when it begins
|
|
to move?"
|
|
|
|
"Just you get up on the box," said Diamond, "and I'll show you.
|
|
There, that van's a-moving now. Jump up."
|
|
|
|
The policeman did as Diamond told him, and was soon satisfied
|
|
that the little fellow could drive.
|
|
|
|
"Well," he said, as he got down again, "I don't know as I should
|
|
be right to interfere. Good luck to you, my little man!"
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir," said Diamond, and drove away.
|
|
|
|
In a few minutes a gentleman hailed him.
|
|
|
|
"Are you the driver of this cab?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir" said Diamond, showing his badge, of which, he was proud.
|
|
|
|
"You're the youngest cabman I ever saw. How am I to know you won't
|
|
break all my bones?"
|
|
|
|
"I would rather break all my own," said Diamond. "But if you're afraid,
|
|
never mind me; I shall soon get another fare."
|
|
|
|
"I'll risk it," said the gentleman; and, opening the door himself,
|
|
he jumped in.
|
|
|
|
He was going a good distance, and soon found that Diamond got him
|
|
over the ground well. Now when Diamond had only to go straight ahead,
|
|
and had not to mind so much what he was about, his thoughts always
|
|
turned to the riddle Mr. Raymond had set him; and this gentleman
|
|
looked so clever that he fancied he must be able to read it for him.
|
|
He had given up all hope of finding it out for himself, and he could
|
|
not plague his father about it when he was ill. He had thought
|
|
of the answer himself, but fancied it could not be the right one,
|
|
for to see how it all fitted required some knowledge of physiology.
|
|
So, when he reached the end of his journey, he got down very quickly,
|
|
and with his head just looking in at the window, said, as the gentleman
|
|
gathered his gloves and newspapers:
|
|
|
|
"Please, sir, can you tell me the meaning of a riddle?"
|
|
|
|
"You must tell me the riddle first," answered the gentleman, amused.
|
|
|
|
Diamond repeated the riddle.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! that's easy enough," he returned. "It's a tree."
|
|
|
|
"Well, it ain't got no mouth, sure enough; but how then does it
|
|
eat all day long?"
|
|
|
|
"It sucks in its food through the tiniest holes in its leaves,"
|
|
he answered. "Its breath is its food. And it can't do it except
|
|
in the daylight."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir, thank you," returned Diamond. "I'm sorry I
|
|
couldn't find it out myself; Mr. Raymond would have been better
|
|
pleased with me."
|
|
|
|
"But you needn't tell him any one told you."
|
|
|
|
Diamond gave him a stare which came from the very back of the
|
|
north wind, where that kind of thing is unknown.
|
|
|
|
"That would be cheating," he said at last.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't you a cabby, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Cabbies don't cheat."
|
|
|
|
"Don't they? I am of a different opinion."
|
|
|
|
"I'm sure my father don't."
|
|
|
|
"What's your fare, young innocent?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, I think the distance is a good deal over three miles--
|
|
that's two shillings. Only father says sixpence a mile is too little,
|
|
though we can't ask for more."
|
|
|
|
"You're a deep one. But I think you're wrong. It's over four miles--
|
|
not much, but it is."
|
|
|
|
"Then that's half-a-crown," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, here's three shillings. Will that do?"
|
|
|
|
"Thank you kindly, sir. I'll tell my father how good you were to me--
|
|
first to tell me my riddle, then to put me right about the distance,
|
|
and then to give me sixpence over. It'll help father to get well again,
|
|
it will."
|
|
|
|
"I hope it may, my man. I shouldn't wonder if you're as good
|
|
as you look, after all."
|
|
|
|
As Diamond returned, he drew up at a stand he had never been on before:
|
|
it was time to give Diamond his bag of chopped beans and oats.
|
|
The men got about him, and began to chaff him. He took it all
|
|
good-humouredly, until one of them, who was an ill-conditioned fellow,
|
|
began to tease old Diamond by poking him roughly in the ribs,
|
|
and making general game of him. That he could not bear, and the
|
|
tears came in his eyes. He undid the nose-bag, put it in the boot,
|
|
and was just going to mount and drive away, when the fellow interfered,
|
|
and would not let him get up. Diamond endeavoured to persuade him,
|
|
and was very civil, but he would have his fun out of him,
|
|
as he said. In a few minutes a group of idle boys had assembled,
|
|
and Diamond found himself in a very uncomfortable position.
|
|
Another cab drew up at the stand, and the driver got off and approached
|
|
the assemblage.
|
|
|
|
"What's up here?" he asked, and Diamond knew the voice. It was
|
|
that of the drunken cabman.
|
|
|
|
"Do you see this young oyster? He pretends to drive a cab,"
|
|
said his enemy.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do see him. And I sees you too. You'd better leave him alone.
|
|
He ain't no oyster. He's a angel come down on his own business.
|
|
You be off, or I'll be nearer you than quite agreeable."
|
|
|
|
The drunken cabman was a tall, stout man, who did not look one
|
|
to take liberties with.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! if he's a friend of yours," said the other, drawing back.
|
|
|
|
Diamond got out the nose-bag again. Old Diamond should have his
|
|
feed out now.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, he is a friend o' mine. One o' the best I ever had.
|
|
It's a pity he ain't a friend o' yourn. You'd be the better for it,
|
|
but it ain't no fault of hisn."
|
|
|
|
When Diamond went home at night, he carried with him one pound
|
|
one shilling and sixpence, besides a few coppers extra, which had
|
|
followed some of the fares.
|
|
|
|
His mother had got very anxious indeed--so much so that she
|
|
was almost afraid, when she did hear the sound of his cab, to go
|
|
and look, lest she should be yet again disappointed, and should
|
|
break down before her husband. But there was the old horse,
|
|
and there was the cab all right, and there was Diamond in the box,
|
|
his pale face looking triumphant as a full moon in the twilight.
|
|
|
|
When he drew up at the stable-door, Jack came out, and after a good
|
|
many friendly questions and congratulations, said:
|
|
|
|
"You go in to your mother, Diamond. I'll put up the old 'oss.
|
|
I'll take care on him. He do deserve some small attention,
|
|
he do."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, Jack," said Diamond, and bounded into the house,
|
|
and into the arms of his mother, who was waiting him at the top
|
|
of the stair.
|
|
|
|
The poor, anxious woman led him into his own room, sat down on his bed,
|
|
took him on her lap as if he had been a baby, and cried.
|
|
|
|
"How's father?" asked Diamond, almost afraid to ask.
|
|
|
|
"Better, my child," she answered, "but uneasy about you, my dear."
|
|
|
|
"Didn't you tell him I was the early bird gone out to catch the worm?"
|
|
|
|
"That was what put it in your head, was it, you monkey?"
|
|
said his mother, beginning to get better.
|
|
|
|
"That or something else," answered Diamond, so very quietly
|
|
that his mother held his head back and stared in his face.
|
|
|
|
"Well! of all the children!" she said, and said no more.
|
|
|
|
"And here's my worm," resumed Diamond.
|
|
|
|
But to see her face as he poured the shillings and sixpences
|
|
and pence into her lap! She burst out crying a second time,
|
|
and ran with the money to her husband.
|
|
|
|
And how pleased he was! It did him no end of good. But while he
|
|
was counting the coins, Diamond turned to baby, who was lying awake
|
|
in his cradle, sucking his precious thumb, and took him up, saying:
|
|
|
|
"Baby, baby! I haven't seen you for a whole year."
|
|
|
|
And then he began to sing to him as usual. And what he sang was this,
|
|
for he was too happy either to make a song of his own or to sing sense.
|
|
It was one out of Mr. Raymond's book.
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE TRUE STORY OF THE CAT AND THE FIDDLE
|
|
|
|
Hey, diddle, diddle!
|
|
The cat and the fiddle!
|
|
He played such a merry tune,
|
|
That the cow went mad
|
|
With the pleasure she had,
|
|
And jumped right over the moon.
|
|
But then, don't you see?
|
|
Before that could be,
|
|
The moon had come down and listened.
|
|
The little dog hearkened,
|
|
So loud that he barkened,
|
|
"There's nothing like it, there isn't."
|
|
|
|
Hey, diddle, diddle!
|
|
Went the cat and the fiddle,
|
|
Hey diddle, diddle, dee, dee!
|
|
The dog laughed at the sport
|
|
Till his cough cut him short,
|
|
It was hey diddle, diddle, oh me!
|
|
And back came the cow
|
|
With a merry, merry low,
|
|
For she'd humbled the man in the moon.
|
|
The dish got excited,
|
|
The spoon was delighted,
|
|
And the dish waltzed away with the spoon.
|
|
|
|
But the man in the moon,
|
|
Coming back too soon
|
|
From the famous town of Norwich,
|
|
Caught up the dish,
|
|
Said, "It's just what I wish
|
|
To hold my cold plum-porridge!"
|
|
Gave the cow a rat-tat,
|
|
Flung water on the cat,
|
|
And sent him away like a rocket.
|
|
Said, "O Moon there you are!"
|
|
Got into her car,
|
|
And went off with the spoon in his pocket
|
|
|
|
Hey ho! diddle, diddle!
|
|
The wet cat and wet fiddle,
|
|
They made such a caterwauling,
|
|
That the cow in a fright
|
|
Stood bolt upright
|
|
Bellowing now, and bawling;
|
|
And the dog on his tail,
|
|
Stretched his neck with a wail.
|
|
But "Ho! ho!" said the man in the moon --
|
|
"No more in the South
|
|
Shall I burn my mouth,
|
|
For I've found a dish and a spoon."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXV
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND'S DREAM
|
|
|
|
|
|
"THERE, baby!" said Diamond; "I'm so happy that I can only
|
|
sing nonsense. Oh, father, think if you had been a poor man,
|
|
and hadn't had a cab and old Diamond! What should I have done?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know indeed what you could have done," said his father
|
|
from the bed.
|
|
|
|
"We should have all starved, my precious Diamond," said his mother,
|
|
whose pride in her boy was even greater than her joy in the shillings.
|
|
Both of them together made her heart ache, for pleasure can do that
|
|
as well as pain.
|
|
|
|
"Oh no! we shouldn't," said Diamond. "I could have taken Nanny's
|
|
crossing till she came back; and then the money, instead of going
|
|
for Old Sal's gin, would have gone for father's beef-tea. I wonder
|
|
what Nanny will do when she gets well again. Somebody else
|
|
will be sure to have taken the crossing by that time. I wonder
|
|
if she will fight for it, and whether I shall have to help her.
|
|
I won't bother my head about that. Time enough yet! Hey diddle!
|
|
hey diddle! hey diddle diddle! I wonder whether Mr. Raymond would
|
|
take me to see Nanny. Hey diddle! hey diddle! hey diddle diddle!
|
|
The baby and fiddle! O, mother, I'm such a silly! But I can't help it.
|
|
I wish I could think of something else, but there's nothing will
|
|
come into my head but hey diddle diddle! the cat and the fiddle!
|
|
I wonder what the angels do--when they're extra happy, you know--
|
|
when they've been driving cabs all day and taking home the money to
|
|
their mothers. Do you think they ever sing nonsense, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"I daresay they've got their own sort of it," answered his mother,
|
|
"else they wouldn't be like other people." She was thinking more
|
|
of her twenty-one shillings and sixpence, and of the nice dinner
|
|
she would get for her sick husband next day, than of the angels
|
|
and their nonsense, when she said it. But Diamond found her answer
|
|
all right.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, to be sure," he replied. "They wouldn't be like other people
|
|
if they hadn't their nonsense sometimes. But it must be very
|
|
pretty nonsense, and not like that silly hey diddle diddle! the cat
|
|
and the fiddle! I wish I could get it out of my head. I wonder
|
|
what the angels' nonsense is like. Nonsense is a very good thing,
|
|
ain't it, mother?--a little of it now and then; more of it for baby,
|
|
and not so much for grown people like cabmen and their mothers?
|
|
It's like the pepper and salt that goes in the soup--that's it--
|
|
isn't it, mother? There's baby fast asleep! Oh, what a nonsense baby
|
|
it is--to sleep so much! Shall I put him down, mother?"
|
|
|
|
Diamond chattered away. What rose in his happy little heart ran
|
|
out of his mouth, and did his father and mother good. When he went
|
|
to bed, which he did early, being more tired, as you may suppose,
|
|
than usual, he was still thinking what the nonsense could be like
|
|
which the angels sang when they were too happy to sing sense.
|
|
But before coming to any conclusion he fell fast asleep. And no wonder,
|
|
for it must be acknowledged a difficult question.
|
|
|
|
That night he had a very curious dream which I think my readers would
|
|
like to have told them. They would, at least, if they are as fond
|
|
of nice dreams as I am, and don't have enough of them of their own.
|
|
|
|
He dreamed that he was running about in the twilight in the old garden.
|
|
He thought he was waiting for North Wind, but she did not come.
|
|
So he would run down to the back gate, and see if she were there.
|
|
He ran and ran. It was a good long garden out of his dream,
|
|
but in his dream it had grown so long and spread out so wide that the
|
|
gate he wanted was nowhere. He ran and ran, but instead of coming
|
|
to the gate found himself in a beautiful country, not like any
|
|
country he had ever been in before. There were no trees of any size;
|
|
nothing bigger in fact than hawthorns, which were full of may-blossom.
|
|
The place in which they grew was wild and dry, mostly covered
|
|
with grass, but having patches of heath. It extended on every side
|
|
as far as he could see. But although it was so wild, yet wherever
|
|
in an ordinary heath you might have expected furze bushes, or holly,
|
|
or broom, there grew roses--wild and rare--all kinds. On every side,
|
|
far and near, roses were glowing. There too was the gum-cistus,
|
|
whose flowers fall every night and come again the next morning,
|
|
lilacs and syringas and laburnums, and many shrubs besides,
|
|
of which he did not know the names; but the roses were everywhere.
|
|
He wandered on and on, wondering when it would come to an end.
|
|
It was of no use going back, for there was no house to be seen anywhere.
|
|
But he was not frightened, for you know Diamond was used to things that
|
|
were rather out of the way. He threw himself down under a rose-bush,
|
|
and fell asleep.
|
|
|
|
He woke, not out of his dream, but into it, thinking he heard a child's
|
|
voice, calling "Diamond, Diamond!" He jumped up, but all was still
|
|
about him. The rose-bushes were pouring out their odours in clouds.
|
|
He could see the scent like mists of the same colour as the rose,
|
|
issuing like a slow fountain and spreading in the air till it
|
|
joined the thin rosy vapour which hung over all the wilderness.
|
|
But again came the voice calling him, and it seemed to come from
|
|
over his head. He looked up, but saw only the deep blue sky full
|
|
of stars--more brilliant, however, than he had seen them before;
|
|
and both sky and stars looked nearer to the earth.
|
|
|
|
While he gazed up, again he heard the cry. At the same moment he
|
|
saw one of the biggest stars over his head give a kind of twinkle
|
|
and jump, as if it went out and came in again. He threw himself
|
|
on his back, and fixed his eyes upon it. Nor had he gazed long
|
|
before it went out, leaving something like a scar in the blue.
|
|
But as he went on gazing he saw a face where the star had been--
|
|
a merry face, with bright eyes. The eyes appeared not only to
|
|
see Diamond, but to know that Diamond had caught sight of them,
|
|
for the face withdrew the same moment. Again came the voice,
|
|
calling "Diamond, Diamond;" and in jumped the star to its place.
|
|
|
|
Diamond called as loud as he could, right up into the sky:
|
|
|
|
"Here's Diamond, down below you. What do you want him to do?"
|
|
|
|
The next instant many of the stars round about that one went out,
|
|
and many voices shouted from the sky,--
|
|
|
|
"Come up; come up. We're so jolly! Diamond! Diamond!"
|
|
|
|
This was followed by a peal of the merriest, kindliest laughter,
|
|
and all the stars jumped into their places again.
|
|
|
|
"How am I to come up?" shouted Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Go round the rose-bush. It's got its foot in it," said the first voice.
|
|
|
|
Diamond got up at once, and walked to the other side of the rose-bush.
|
|
|
|
There he found what seemed the very opposite of what he wanted--
|
|
a stair down into the earth. It was of turf and moss. It did not seem
|
|
to promise well for getting into the sky, but Diamond had learned
|
|
to look through the look of things. The voice must have meant
|
|
that he was to go down this stair; and down this stair Diamond went,
|
|
without waiting to think more about it.
|
|
|
|
It was such a nice stair, so cool and soft--all the sides as well
|
|
as the steps grown with moss and grass and ferns! Down and down
|
|
Diamond went--a long way, until at last he heard the gurgling
|
|
and splashing of a little stream; nor had he gone much farther
|
|
before he met it--yes, met it coming up the stairs to meet him,
|
|
running up just as naturally as if it had been doing the other thing.
|
|
Neither was Diamond in the least surprised to see it pitching itself
|
|
from one step to another as it climbed towards him: he never
|
|
thought it was odd--and no more it was, there. It would have been
|
|
odd here. It made a merry tune as it came, and its voice was like
|
|
the laughter he had heard from the sky. This appeared promising;
|
|
and he went on, down and down the stair, and up and up the stream,
|
|
till at last he came where it hurried out from under a stone,
|
|
and the stair stopped altogether. And as the stream bubbled up,
|
|
the stone shook and swayed with its force; and Diamond thought he
|
|
would try to lift it. Lightly it rose to his hand, forced up by the
|
|
stream from below; and, by what would have seemed an unaccountable
|
|
perversion of things had he been awake, threatened to come tumbling
|
|
upon his head. But he avoided it, and when it fell, got upon it.
|
|
He now saw that the opening through which the water came pouring
|
|
in was over his head, and with the help of the stone he scrambled
|
|
out by it, and found himself on the side of a grassy hill which
|
|
rounded away from him in every direction, and down which came
|
|
the brook which vanished in the hole. But scarcely had he noticed
|
|
so much as this before a merry shouting and laughter burst upon him,
|
|
and a number of naked little boys came running, every one eager to get
|
|
to him first. At the shoulders of each fluttered two little wings,
|
|
which were of no use for flying, as they were mere buds; only being
|
|
made for it they could not help fluttering as if they were flying.
|
|
Just as the foremost of the troop reached him, one or two of
|
|
them fell, and the rest with shouts of laughter came tumbling
|
|
over them till they heaped up a mound of struggling merriment.
|
|
One after another they extricated themselves, and each as he got
|
|
free threw his arms round Diamond and kissed him. Diamond's heart
|
|
was ready to melt within him from clear delight. When they had all
|
|
embraced him,--
|
|
|
|
"Now let us have some fun," cried one, and with a shout they all scampered
|
|
hither and thither, and played the wildest gambols on the grassy slopes.
|
|
They kept constantly coming back to Diamond, however, as the centre of
|
|
their enjoyment, rejoicing over him as if they had found a lost playmate.
|
|
|
|
There was a wind on the hillside which blew like the very embodiment
|
|
of living gladness. It blew into Diamond's heart, and made him
|
|
so happy that he was forced to sit down and cry.
|
|
|
|
"Now let's go and dig for stars," said one who seemed to be
|
|
the captain of the troop.
|
|
|
|
They all scurried away, but soon returned, one after another,
|
|
each with a pickaxe on his shoulder and a spade in his hand.
|
|
As soon as they were gathered, the captain led them in a straight
|
|
line to another part of the hill. Diamond rose and followed.
|
|
|
|
"Here is where we begin our lesson for to-night," he said.
|
|
"Scatter and dig."
|
|
|
|
There was no more fun. Each went by himself, walking slowly with bent
|
|
shoulders and his eyes fixed on the ground. Every now and then
|
|
one would stop, kneel down, and look intently, feeling with his
|
|
hands and parting the grass. One would get up and walk on again,
|
|
another spring to his feet, catch eagerly at his pickaxe and
|
|
strike it into the ground once and again, then throw it aside,
|
|
snatch up his spade, and commence digging at the loosened earth.
|
|
Now one would sorrowfully shovel the earth into the hole again,
|
|
trample it down with his little bare white feet, and walk on.
|
|
But another would give a joyful shout, and after much tugging
|
|
and loosening would draw from the hole a lump as big as his head,
|
|
or no bigger than his fist; when the under side of it would pour
|
|
such a blaze of golden or bluish light into Diamond's eyes that he
|
|
was quite dazzled. Gold and blue were the commoner colours:
|
|
the jubilation was greater over red or green or purple. And every
|
|
time a star was dug up all the little angels dropped their tools
|
|
and crowded about it, shouting and dancing and fluttering their
|
|
wing-buds.
|
|
|
|
When they had examined it well, they would kneel down one after the
|
|
other and peep through the hole; but they always stood back to give
|
|
Diamond the first look. All that diamond could report, however, was,
|
|
that through the star-holes he saw a great many things and places
|
|
and people he knew quite well, only somehow they were different--
|
|
there was something marvellous about them--he could not tell what.
|
|
Every time he rose from looking through a star-hole, he felt as if his
|
|
heart would break for, joy; and he said that if he had not cried,
|
|
he did not know what would have become of him.
|
|
|
|
As soon as all had looked, the star was carefully fitted in again,
|
|
a little mould was strewn over it, and the rest of the heap left
|
|
as a sign that the star had been discovered.
|
|
|
|
At length one dug up a small star of a most lovely colour--a colour
|
|
Diamond had never seen before. The moment the angel saw what it was,
|
|
instead of showing it about, he handed it to one of his neighbours,
|
|
and seated himself on the edge of the hole, saying:
|
|
|
|
"This will do for me. Good-bye. I'm off."
|
|
|
|
They crowded about him, hugging and kissing him; then stood back
|
|
with a solemn stillness, their wings lying close to their shoulders.
|
|
The little fellow looked round on them once with a smile, and then
|
|
shot himself headlong through the star-hole. Diamond, as privileged,
|
|
threw himself on the ground to peep after him, but he saw nothing.
|
|
"It's no use," said the captain. "I never saw anything more of one
|
|
that went that way."
|
|
|
|
"His wings can't be much use," said Diamond, concerned and fearful,
|
|
yet comforted by the calm looks of the rest.
|
|
|
|
"That's true," said the captain. "He's lost them by this time.
|
|
They all do that go that way. You haven't got any, you see."
|
|
|
|
"No," said Diamond. "I never did have any."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! didn't you?" said the captain.
|
|
|
|
"Some people say," he added, after a pause, "that they come again.
|
|
I don't know. I've never found the colour I care about myself.
|
|
I suppose I shall some day."
|
|
|
|
Then they looked again at the star, put it carefully into its hole,
|
|
danced around it and over it--but solemnly, and called it by the name
|
|
of the finder.
|
|
|
|
"Will you know it again?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes. We never forget a star that's been made a door of."
|
|
|
|
Then they went on with their searching and digging.
|
|
|
|
Diamond having neither pickaxe nor spade, had the more time to think.
|
|
|
|
"I don't see any little girls," he said at last.
|
|
|
|
The captain stopped his shovelling, leaned on his spade, rubbed his
|
|
forehead thoughtfully with his left hand--the little angels were
|
|
all left-handed--repeated the words "little girls," and then,
|
|
as if a thought had struck him, resumed his work, saying--
|
|
|
|
"I think I know what you mean. I've never seen any of them, of course;
|
|
but I suppose that's the sort you mean. I'm told--but mind I don't
|
|
say it is so, for I don't know--that when we fall asleep, a troop
|
|
of angels very like ourselves, only quite different, goes round
|
|
to all the stars we have discovered, and discovers them after us.
|
|
I suppose with our shovelling and handling we spoil them a bit;
|
|
and I daresay the clouds that come up from below make them smoky
|
|
and dull sometimes. They say--mind, I say they say--these other
|
|
angels take them out one by one, and pass each round as we do,
|
|
and breathe over it, and rub it with their white hands, which are
|
|
softer than ours, because they don't do any pick-and-spade work,
|
|
and smile at it, and put it in again: and that is what keeps them from
|
|
growing dark."
|
|
|
|
"How jolly!" thought Diamond. "I should like to see them at their
|
|
work too.--When do you go to sleep?" he asked the captain.
|
|
|
|
"When we grow sleepy," answered the captain. "They do say--but mind
|
|
I say they say--that it is when those others--what do you call them?
|
|
I don't know if that is their name; I am only guessing that may be
|
|
the sort you mean--when they are on their rounds and come near any
|
|
troop of us we fall asleep. They live on the west side of the hill.
|
|
None of us have ever been to the top of it yet."
|
|
|
|
Even as he spoke, he dropped his spade. He tumbled down beside it,
|
|
and lay fast asleep. One after the other each of the troop dropped
|
|
his pickaxe or shovel from his listless hands, and lay fast asleep
|
|
by his work.
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" thought Diamond to himself, with delight, "now the girl-angels
|
|
are coming, and I, not being an angel, shall not fall asleep
|
|
like the rest, and I shall see the girl-angels."
|
|
|
|
But the same moment he felt himself growing sleepy. He struggled
|
|
hard with the invading power. He put up his fingers to his eyelids
|
|
and pulled them open. But it was of no use. He thought he saw
|
|
a glimmer of pale rosy light far up the green hill, and ceased
|
|
to know.
|
|
|
|
When he awoke, all the angels were starting up wide awake too.
|
|
He expected to see them lift their tools, but no, the time for play
|
|
had come. They looked happier than ever, and each began to sing
|
|
where he stood. He had not heard them sing before.
|
|
|
|
"Now," he thought, "I shall know what kind of nonsense the angels
|
|
sing when they are merry. They don't drive cabs, I see, but they
|
|
dig for stars, and they work hard enough to be merry after it."
|
|
|
|
And he did hear some of the angels' nonsense; for if it was all
|
|
sense to them, it had only just as much sense to Diamond as made
|
|
good nonsense of it. He tried hard to set it down in his mind,
|
|
listening as closely as he could, now to one, now to another,
|
|
and now to all together. But while they were yet singing he began,
|
|
to his dismay, to find that he was coming awake--faster and faster.
|
|
And as he came awake, he found that, for all the goodness of his memory,
|
|
verse after verse of the angels' nonsense vanished from it.
|
|
He always thought he could keep the last, but as the next began he
|
|
lost the one before it, and at length awoke, struggling to keep hold
|
|
of the last verse of all. He felt as if the effort to keep from
|
|
forgetting that one verse of the vanishing song nearly killed him.
|
|
And yet by the time he was wide awake he could not be sure of that even.
|
|
It was something like this:
|
|
|
|
|
|
White hands of whiteness
|
|
Wash the stars' faces,
|
|
Till glitter, glitter, glit, goes their brightness
|
|
Down to poor places.
|
|
|
|
|
|
This, however, was so near sense that he thought it could not be
|
|
really what they did sing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVI
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND TAKES A FARE THE WRONG WAY RIGHT
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE next morning Diamond was up almost as early as before. He had nothing
|
|
to fear from his mother now, and made no secret of what he was about.
|
|
By the time he reached the stable, several of the men were there.
|
|
They asked him a good many questions as to his luck the day before,
|
|
and he told them all they wanted to know. But when he proceeded
|
|
to harness the old horse, they pushed him aside with rough kindness,
|
|
called him a baby, and began to do it all for him. So Diamond
|
|
ran in and had another mouthful of tea and bread and butter;
|
|
and although he had never been so tired as he was the night before,
|
|
he started quite fresh this morning. It was a cloudy day,
|
|
and the wind blew hard from the north--so hard sometimes that,
|
|
perched on the box with just his toes touching the ground,
|
|
Diamond wished that he had some kind of strap to fasten himself
|
|
down with lest he should be blown away. But he did not really
|
|
mind it.
|
|
|
|
His head was full of the dream he had dreamed; but it did not make
|
|
him neglect his work, for his work was not to dig stars but to drive
|
|
old Diamond and pick up fares. There are not many people who can
|
|
think about beautiful things and do common work at the same time.
|
|
But then there are not many people who have been to the back of the
|
|
north wind.
|
|
|
|
There was not much business doing. And Diamond felt rather cold,
|
|
notwithstanding his mother had herself put on his comforter
|
|
and helped him with his greatcoat. But he was too well aware
|
|
of his dignity to get inside his cab as some do. A cabman ought
|
|
to be above minding the weather--at least so Diamond thought.
|
|
At length he was called to a neighbouring house, where a young woman
|
|
with a heavy box had to be taken to Wapping for a coast-steamer.
|
|
|
|
He did not find it at all pleasant, so far east and so near the river;
|
|
for the roughs were in great force. However, there being no block,
|
|
not even in Nightingale Lane, he reached the entrance of the wharf,
|
|
and set down his passenger without annoyance. But as he turned
|
|
to go back, some idlers, not content with chaffing him, showed a
|
|
mind to the fare the young woman had given him. They were just
|
|
pulling him off the box, and Diamond was shouting for the police,
|
|
when a pale-faced man, in very shabby clothes, but with the look
|
|
of a gentleman somewhere about him, came up, and making good use of
|
|
his stick, drove them off.
|
|
|
|
"Now, my little man," he said, "get on while you can. Don't lose
|
|
any time. This is not a place for you."
|
|
|
|
But Diamond was not in the habit of thinking only of himself.
|
|
He saw that his new friend looked weary, if not ill, and very poor.
|
|
|
|
"Won't you jump in, sir?" he said. "I will take you wherever
|
|
you like."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, my man; but I have no money; so I can't."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! I don't want any money. I shall be much happier if you will
|
|
get in. You have saved me all I had. I owe you a lift, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Which way are you going?"
|
|
|
|
"To Charing Cross; but I don't mind where I go."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I am very tired. If you will take me to Charing Cross,
|
|
I shall be greatly obliged to you. I have walked from Gravesend,
|
|
and had hardly a penny left to get through the tunnel."
|
|
|
|
So saying, he opened the door and got in, and Diamond drove away.
|
|
|
|
But as he drove, he could not help fancying he had seen the gentleman--
|
|
for Diamond knew he was a gentleman--before. Do all he could,
|
|
however, he could not recall where or when. Meantime his fare,
|
|
if we may call him such, seeing he was to pay nothing, whom the relief
|
|
of being carried had made less and less inclined to carry himself,
|
|
had been turning over things in his mind, and, as they passed
|
|
the Mint, called to Diamond, who stopped the horse, got down
|
|
and went to the window.
|
|
|
|
"If you didn't mind taking me to Chiswick, I should be able
|
|
to pay you when we got there. It's a long way, but you shall
|
|
have the whole fare from the Docks--and something over."
|
|
|
|
"Very well, sir" said Diamond. "I shall be most happy."
|
|
|
|
He was just clambering up again, when the gentleman put his head
|
|
out of the window and said--
|
|
|
|
"It's The Wilderness--Mr. Coleman's place; but I'll direct you
|
|
when we come into the neighbourhood."
|
|
|
|
It flashed upon Diamond who he was. But he got upon his box
|
|
to arrange his thoughts before making any reply.
|
|
|
|
The gentleman was Mr. Evans, to whom Miss Coleman was to have been
|
|
married, and Diamond had seen him several times with her in the garden.
|
|
I have said that he had not behaved very well to Miss Coleman.
|
|
He had put off their marriage more than once in a cowardly fashion,
|
|
merely because he was ashamed to marry upon a small income,
|
|
and live in a humble way. When a man thinks of what people will say
|
|
in such a case, he may love, but his love is but a poor affair.
|
|
Mr. Coleman took him into the firm as a junior partner, and it
|
|
was in a measure through his influence that he entered upon those
|
|
speculations which ruined him. So his love had not been a blessing.
|
|
The ship which North Wind had sunk was their last venture,
|
|
and Mr. Evans had gone out with it in the hope of turning its
|
|
cargo to the best advantage. He was one of the single boat-load
|
|
which managed to reach a desert island, and he had gone through
|
|
a great many hardships and sufferings since then. But he was not
|
|
past being taught, and his troubles had done him no end of good,
|
|
for they had made him doubt himself, and begin to think, so that
|
|
he had come to see that he had been foolish as well as wicked.
|
|
For, if he had had Miss Coleman with him in the desert island,
|
|
to build her a hut, and hunt for her food, and make clothes for her,
|
|
he would have thought himself the most fortunate of men; and when he
|
|
was at home, he would not marry till he could afford a man-servant.
|
|
Before he got home again, he had even begun to understand that no man
|
|
can make haste to be rich without going against the will of God,
|
|
in which case it is the one frightful thing to be successful.
|
|
So he had come back a more humble man, and longing to ask Miss Coleman
|
|
to forgive him. But he had no idea what ruin had fallen upon them,
|
|
for he had never made himself thoroughly acquainted with the
|
|
firm's affairs. Few speculative people do know their own affairs.
|
|
Hence he never doubted he should find matters much as he left them,
|
|
and expected to see them all at The Wilderness as before. But if he
|
|
had not fallen in with Diamond, he would not have thought of going
|
|
there first.
|
|
|
|
What was Diamond to do? He had heard his father and mother drop
|
|
some remarks concerning Mr. Evans which made him doubtful of him.
|
|
He understood that he had not been so considerate as he might have been.
|
|
So he went rather slowly till he should make up his mind. It was,
|
|
of course, of no use to drive Mr. Evans to Chiswick. But if he
|
|
should tell him what had befallen them, and where they lived now,
|
|
he might put off going to see them, and he was certain that Miss Coleman,
|
|
at least, must want very much to see Mr. Evans. He was pretty sure
|
|
also that the best thing in any case was to bring them together,
|
|
and let them set matters right for themselves.
|
|
|
|
The moment he came to this conclusion, he changed his course from
|
|
westward to northward, and went straight for Mr. Coleman's poor
|
|
little house in Hoxton. Mr. Evans was too tired and too much
|
|
occupied with his thoughts to take the least notice of the streets
|
|
they passed through, and had no suspicion, therefore, of the change
|
|
of direction.
|
|
|
|
By this time the wind had increased almost to a hurricane, and as they
|
|
had often to head it, it was no joke for either of the Diamonds.
|
|
The distance, however, was not great. Before they reached the street
|
|
where Mr. Coleman lived it blew so tremendously, that when Miss Coleman,
|
|
who was going out a little way, opened the door, it dashed against
|
|
the wall with such a bang, that she was afraid to venture, and went
|
|
in again. In five minutes after, Diamond drew up at the door.
|
|
As soon as he had entered the street, however, the wind blew
|
|
right behind them, and when he pulled up, old Diamond had so much
|
|
ado to stop the cab against it, that the breeching broke.
|
|
Young Diamond jumped off his box, knocked loudly at the door,
|
|
then turned to the cab and said--before Mr. Evans had quite begun
|
|
to think something must be amiss:
|
|
|
|
"Please, sir, my harness has given away. Would you mind stepping
|
|
in here for a few minutes? They're friends of mine. I'll take you
|
|
where you like after I've got it mended. I shan't be many minutes,
|
|
but you can't stand in this wind."
|
|
|
|
Half stupid with fatigue and want of food, Mr. Evans yielded
|
|
to the boy's suggestion, and walked in at the door which the maid
|
|
held with difficulty against the wind. She took Mr. Evans
|
|
for a visitor, as indeed he was, and showed him into the room
|
|
on the ground-floor. Diamond, who had followed into the hall,
|
|
whispered to her as she closed the door--
|
|
|
|
"Tell Miss Coleman. It's Miss Coleman he wants to see."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know" said the maid. "He don't look much like a gentleman."
|
|
|
|
"He is, though; and I know him, and so does Miss Coleman."
|
|
|
|
The maid could not but remember Diamond, having seen him when he
|
|
and his father brought the ladies home. So she believed him,
|
|
and went to do what he told her.
|
|
|
|
What passed in the little parlour when Miss Coleman came down
|
|
does not belong to my story, which is all about Diamond.
|
|
If he had known that Miss Coleman thought Mr. Evans was dead,
|
|
perhaps he would have managed differently. There was a cry
|
|
and a running to and fro in the house, and then all was quiet again.
|
|
|
|
Almost as soon as Mr. Evans went in, the wind began to cease,
|
|
and was now still. Diamond found that by making the breeching
|
|
just a little tighter than was quite comfortable for the old
|
|
horse he could do very well for the present; and, thinking it
|
|
better to let him have his bag in this quiet place, he sat
|
|
on the box till the old horse should have eaten his dinner.
|
|
In a little while Mr. Evans came out, and asked him to come in.
|
|
Diamond obeyed, and to his delight Miss Coleman put her arms round
|
|
him and kissed him, and there was payment for him! Not to mention
|
|
the five precious shillings she gave him, which he could not refuse
|
|
because his mother wanted them so much at home for his father.
|
|
He left them nearly as happy as they were themselves.
|
|
|
|
The rest of the day he did better, and, although he had not so
|
|
much to take home as the day before, yet on the whole the result
|
|
was satisfactory. And what a story he had to tell his father
|
|
and mother about his adventures, and how he had done, and what was
|
|
the result! They asked him such a multitude of questions! some
|
|
of which he could answer, and some of which he could not answer;
|
|
and his father seemed ever so much better from finding that his boy
|
|
was already not only useful to his family but useful to other people,
|
|
and quite taking his place as a man who judged what was wise,
|
|
and did work worth doing.
|
|
|
|
For a fortnight Diamond went on driving his cab, and keeping his family.
|
|
He had begun to be known about some parts of London, and people would
|
|
prefer taking his cab because they liked what they heard of him.
|
|
One gentleman who lived near the mews engaged him to carry him
|
|
to the City every morning at a certain hour; and Diamond was
|
|
punctual as clockwork--though to effect that required a good deal
|
|
of care, for his father's watch was not much to be depended on,
|
|
and had to be watched itself by the clock of St. George's church.
|
|
Between the two, however, he did make a success of it.
|
|
|
|
After that fortnight, his father was able to go out again.
|
|
Then Diamond went to make inquiries about Nanny, and this led
|
|
to something else.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVII
|
|
|
|
THE CHILDREN'S HOSPITAL
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE first day his father resumed his work, Diamond went with him
|
|
as usual. In the afternoon, however, his father, having taken
|
|
a fare to the neighbourhood, went home, and Diamond drove the cab
|
|
the rest of the day. It was hard for old Diamond to do all
|
|
the work, but they could not afford to have another horse.
|
|
They contrived to save him as much as possible, and fed him well,
|
|
and he did bravely.
|
|
|
|
The next morning his father was so much stronger that Diamond
|
|
thought he might go and ask Mr. Raymond to take him to see Nanny.
|
|
He found him at home. His servant had grown friendly by this time,
|
|
and showed him in without any cross-questioning. Mr. Raymond received
|
|
him with his usual kindness, consented at once, and walked with him
|
|
to the Hospital, which was close at hand. It was a comfortable
|
|
old-fashioned house, built in the reign of Queen Anne, and in her day,
|
|
no doubt, inhabited by rich and fashionable people: now it was a home
|
|
for poor sick children, who were carefully tended for love's sake.
|
|
There are regions in London where a hospital in every other street
|
|
might be full of such children, whose fathers and mothers are dead,
|
|
or unable to take care of them.
|
|
|
|
When Diamond followed Mr. Raymond into the room where those children
|
|
who had got over the worst of their illness and were growing better lay,
|
|
he saw a number of little iron bedsteads, with their heads to the walls,
|
|
and in every one of them a child, whose face was a story in itself.
|
|
In some, health had begun to appear in a tinge upon the cheeks,
|
|
and a doubtful brightness in the eyes, just as out of the cold dreary
|
|
winter the spring comes in blushing buds and bright crocuses.
|
|
In others there were more of the signs of winter left. Their faces
|
|
reminded you of snow and keen cutting winds, more than of sunshine
|
|
and soft breezes and butterflies; but even in them the signs
|
|
of suffering told that the suffering was less, and that if the
|
|
spring-time had but arrived, it had yet arrived.
|
|
|
|
Diamond looked all round, but could see no Nanny. He turned
|
|
to Mr. Raymond with a question in his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"Nanny's not here," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes, she is."
|
|
|
|
"I don't see her."
|
|
|
|
"I do, though. There she is."
|
|
|
|
He pointed to a bed right in front of where Diamond was standing.
|
|
|
|
"That's not Nanny," he said.
|
|
|
|
"It is Nanny. I have seen her many times since you have.
|
|
Illness makes a great difference."
|
|
|
|
"Why, that girl must have been to the back of the north wind!"
|
|
thought Diamond, but he said nothing, only stared; and as he stared,
|
|
something of the old Nanny began to dawn through the face of the
|
|
new Nanny. The old Nanny, though a good girl, and a friendly girl,
|
|
had been rough, blunt in her speech, and dirty in her person.
|
|
Her face would always have reminded one who had already been to the back
|
|
of the north wind of something he had seen in the best of company,
|
|
but it had been coarse notwithstanding, partly from the weather,
|
|
partly from her living amongst low people, and partly from having
|
|
to defend herself: now it was so sweet, and gentle, and refined,
|
|
that she might have had a lady and gentleman for a father and mother.
|
|
And Diamond could not help thinking of words which he had heard
|
|
in the church the day before: "Surely it is good to be afflicted;"
|
|
or something like that. North Wind, somehow or other, must have
|
|
had to do with her! She had grown from a rough girl into a gentle
|
|
maiden.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Raymond, however, was not surprised, for he was used to see
|
|
such lovely changes--something like the change which passes upon
|
|
the crawling, many-footed creature, when it turns sick and ill,
|
|
and revives a butterfly, with two wings instead of many feet.
|
|
Instead of her having to take care of herself, kind hands ministered
|
|
to her, making her comfortable and sweet and clean, soothing her
|
|
aching head, and giving her cooling drink when she was thirsty;
|
|
and kind eyes, the stars of the kingdom of heaven, had shone upon her;
|
|
so that, what with the fire of the fever and the dew of tenderness,
|
|
that which was coarse in her had melted away, and her whole face
|
|
had grown so refined and sweet that Diamond did not know her. But as
|
|
he gazed, the best of the old face, all the true and good part of it,
|
|
that which was Nanny herself, dawned upon him, like the moon coming
|
|
out of a cloud, until at length, instead of only believing Mr. Raymond
|
|
that this was she, he saw for himself that it was Nanny indeed--
|
|
very worn but grown beautiful.
|
|
|
|
He went up to her. She smiled. He had heard her laugh, but had
|
|
never seen her smile before.
|
|
|
|
"Nanny, do you know me?" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
She only smiled again, as if the question was amusing.
|
|
|
|
She was not likely to forget him; for although she did not yet know
|
|
it was he who had got her there, she had dreamed of him often,
|
|
and had talked much about him when delirious. Nor was it much wonder,
|
|
for he was the only boy except Joe who had ever shown her kindness.
|
|
|
|
Meantime Mr. Raymond was going from bed to bed, talking to the
|
|
little people. Every one knew him, and every one was eager
|
|
to have a look, and a smile, and a kind word from him.
|
|
|
|
Diamond sat down on a stool at the head of Nanny's bed. She laid
|
|
her hand in his. No one else of her old acquaintance had been
|
|
near her.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly a little voice called aloud--
|
|
|
|
"Won't Mr. Raymond tell us a story?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes, please do! please do!" cried several little voices which
|
|
also were stronger than the rest. For Mr. Raymond was in the habit
|
|
of telling them a story when he went to see them, and they enjoyed
|
|
it far more than the other nice things which the doctor permitted
|
|
him to give them.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," said Mr. Raymond, "I will. What sort of a story shall
|
|
it be?"
|
|
|
|
"A true story," said one little girl.
|
|
|
|
"A fairy tale," said a little boy.
|
|
|
|
"Well," said Mr. Raymond, "I suppose, as there is a difference,
|
|
I may choose. I can't think of any true story just at this moment,
|
|
so I will tell you a sort of a fairy one."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, jolly!" exclaimed the little boy who had called out for
|
|
a fairy tale.
|
|
|
|
"It came into my head this morning as I got out of bed,"
|
|
continued Mr. Raymond; "and if it turns out pretty well,
|
|
I will write it down, and get somebody to print it for me,
|
|
and then you shall read it when you like."
|
|
|
|
"Then nobody ever heard it before?" asked one older child.
|
|
|
|
"No, nobody."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" exclaimed several, thinking it very grand to have the first telling;
|
|
and I daresay there might be a peculiar freshness about it,
|
|
because everything would be nearly as new to the story-teller
|
|
himself as to the listeners.
|
|
|
|
Some were only sitting up and some were lying down, so there could
|
|
not be the same busy gathering, bustling, and shifting to and fro
|
|
with which children generally prepare themselves to hear a story;
|
|
but their faces, and the turning of their heads, and many feeble
|
|
exclamations of expected pleasure, showed that all such preparations
|
|
were making within them.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Raymond stood in the middle of the room, that he might turn from
|
|
side to side, and give each a share of seeing him. Diamond kept
|
|
his place by Nanny's side, with her hand in his. I do not know
|
|
how much of Mr. Raymond's story the smaller children understood;
|
|
indeed, I don't quite know how much there was in it to be understood,
|
|
for in such a story every one has just to take what he can get.
|
|
But they all listened with apparent satisfaction, and certainly
|
|
with great attention. Mr. Raymond wrote it down afterwards,
|
|
and here it is--somewhat altered no doubt, for a good story-teller
|
|
tries to make his stories better every time he tells them.
|
|
I cannot myself help thinking that he was somewhat indebted for this
|
|
one to the old story of The Sleeping Beauty.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVIII
|
|
|
|
LITTLE DAYLIGHT
|
|
|
|
|
|
NO HOUSE of any pretension to be called a palace is in the least
|
|
worthy of the name, except it has a wood near it--very near it--
|
|
and the nearer the better. Not all round it--I don't mean that,
|
|
for a palace ought to be open to the sun and wind, and stand
|
|
high and brave, with weathercocks glittering and flags flying;
|
|
but on one side of every palace there must be a wood. And there
|
|
was a very grand wood indeed beside the palace of the king who was
|
|
going to be Daylight's father; such a grand wood, that nobody yet
|
|
had ever got to the other end of it. Near the house it was kept
|
|
very trim and nice, and it was free of brushwood for a long way in;
|
|
but by degrees it got wild, and it grew wilder, and wilder, and wilder,
|
|
until some said wild beasts at last did what they liked in it.
|
|
The king and his courtiers often hunted, however, and this kept the wild
|
|
beasts far away from the palace.
|
|
|
|
One glorious summer morning, when the wind and sun were out together,
|
|
when the vanes were flashing and the flags frolicking against
|
|
the blue sky, little Daylight made her appearance from somewhere--
|
|
nobody could tell where--a beautiful baby, with such bright eyes
|
|
that she might have come from the sun, only by and by she showed such
|
|
lively ways that she might equally well have come out of the wind.
|
|
There was great jubilation in the palace, for this was the first baby
|
|
the queen had had, and there is as much happiness over a new baby
|
|
in a palace as in a cottage.
|
|
|
|
But there is one disadvantage of living near a wood: you do not know
|
|
quite who your neighbours may be. Everybody knew there were in it
|
|
several fairies, living within a few miles of the palace, who always
|
|
had had something to do with each new baby that came; for fairies live
|
|
so much longer than we, that they can have business with a good many
|
|
generations of human mortals. The curious houses they lived in were
|
|
well known also,--one, a hollow oak; another, a birch-tree, though
|
|
nobody could ever find how that fairy made a house of it; another, a hut
|
|
of growing trees intertwined, and patched up with turf and moss.
|
|
But there was another fairy who had lately come to the place,
|
|
and nobody even knew she was a fairy except the other fairies.
|
|
A wicked old thing she was, always concealing her power,
|
|
and being as disagreeable as she could, in order to tempt people
|
|
to give her offence, that she might have the pleasure of taking
|
|
vengeance upon them. The people about thought she was a witch,
|
|
and those who knew her by sight were careful to avoid offending her.
|
|
She lived in a mud house, in a swampy part of the forest.
|
|
|
|
In all history we find that fairies give their remarkable gifts
|
|
to prince or princess, or any child of sufficient importance in
|
|
their eyes, always at the christening. Now this we can understand,
|
|
because it is an ancient custom amongst human beings as well;
|
|
and it is not hard to explain why wicked fairies should choose
|
|
the same time to do unkind things; but it is difficult to understand
|
|
how they should be able to do them, for you would fancy all wicked
|
|
creatures would be powerless on such an occasion. But I never knew
|
|
of any interference on the part of the wicked fairy that did not
|
|
turn out a good thing in the end. What a good thing, for instance,
|
|
it was that one princess should sleep for a hundred years! Was she
|
|
not saved from all the plague of young men who were not worthy of her?
|
|
And did she not come awake exactly at the right moment when the
|
|
right prince kissed her? For my part, I cannot help wishing a good
|
|
many girls would sleep till just the same fate overtook them.
|
|
It would be happier for them, and more agreeable to their friends.
|
|
|
|
Of course all the known fairies were invited to the christening.
|
|
But the king and queen never thought of inviting an old witch.
|
|
|
|
For the power of the fairies they have by nature; whereas a witch gets
|
|
her power by wickedness. The other fairies, however, knowing the
|
|
danger thus run, provided as well as they could against accidents
|
|
from her quarter. But they could neither render her powerless,
|
|
nor could they arrange their gifts in reference to hers beforehand,
|
|
for they could not tell what those might be.
|
|
|
|
Of course the old hag was there without being asked. Not to be
|
|
asked was just what she wanted, that she might have a sort of reason
|
|
for doing what she wished to do. For somehow even the wickedest
|
|
of creatures likes a pretext for doing the wrong thing.
|
|
|
|
Five fairies had one after the other given the child such gifts
|
|
as each counted best, and the fifth had just stepped back to her
|
|
place in the surrounding splendour of ladies and gentlemen, when,
|
|
mumbling a laugh between her toothless gums, the wicked fairy
|
|
hobbled out into the middle of the circle, and at the moment
|
|
when the archbishop was handing the baby to the lady at the head
|
|
of the nursery department of state affairs, addressed him thus,
|
|
giving a bite or two to every word before she could part with it:
|
|
|
|
"Please your Grace, I'm very deaf: would your Grace mind repeating
|
|
the princess's name?"
|
|
|
|
"With pleasure, my good woman," said the archbishop, stooping to
|
|
shout in her ear: "the infant's name is little Daylight."
|
|
|
|
"And little daylight it shall be," cried the fairy, in the tone
|
|
of a dry axle, "and little good shall any of her gifts do her.
|
|
For I bestow upon her the gift of sleeping all day long, whether she
|
|
will or not. Ha, ha! He, he! Hi, hi!"
|
|
|
|
Then out started the sixth fairy, who, of course, the others
|
|
had arranged should come after the wicked one, in order to undo
|
|
as much as she might.
|
|
|
|
"If she sleep all day," she said, mournfully, "she shall, at least,
|
|
wake all night."
|
|
|
|
"A nice prospect for her mother and me!" thought the poor king;
|
|
for they loved her far too much to give her up to nurses,
|
|
especially at night, as most kings and queens do--and are sorry
|
|
for it afterwards.
|
|
|
|
"You spoke before I had done," said the wicked fairy. "That's against
|
|
the law. It gives me another chance."
|
|
|
|
"I beg your pardon," said the other fairies, all together.
|
|
|
|
"She did. I hadn't done laughing," said the crone. "I had only got
|
|
to Hi, hi! and I had to go through Ho, ho! and Hu, hu! So I decree
|
|
that if she wakes all night she shall wax and wane with its mistress,
|
|
the moon. And what that may mean I hope her royal parents will
|
|
live to see. Ho, ho! Hu, hu!"
|
|
|
|
But out stepped another fairy, for they had been wise enough to keep
|
|
two in reserve, because every fairy knew the trick of one.
|
|
|
|
"Until," said the seventh fairy, "a prince comes who shall kiss
|
|
her without knowing it."
|
|
|
|
The wicked fairy made a horrid noise like an angry cat, and hobbled away.
|
|
She could not pretend that she had not finished her speech this time,
|
|
for she had laughed Ho, ho! and Hu, hu!
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what that means," said the poor king to the seventh fairy.
|
|
|
|
"Don't be afraid. The meaning will come with the thing itself,"
|
|
said she.
|
|
|
|
The assembly broke up, miserable enough--the queen, at least,
|
|
prepared for a good many sleepless nights, and the lady at the head
|
|
of the nursery department anything but comfortable in the prospect
|
|
before her, for of course the queen could not do it all. As for
|
|
the king, he made up his mind, with what courage he could summon,
|
|
to meet the demands of the case, but wondered whether he could
|
|
with any propriety require the First Lord of the Treasury to take
|
|
a share in the burden laid upon him.
|
|
|
|
I will not attempt to describe what they had to go through for some time.
|
|
But at last the household settled into a regular system--a very irregular
|
|
one in some respects. For at certain seasons the palace rang all night
|
|
with bursts of laughter from little Daylight, whose heart the old
|
|
fairy's curse could not reach; she was Daylight still, only a little
|
|
in the wrong place, for she always dropped asleep at the first hint
|
|
of dawn in the east. But her merriment was of short duration.
|
|
When the moon was at the full, she was in glorious spirits,
|
|
and as beautiful as it was possible for a child of her age to be.
|
|
But as the moon waned, she faded, until at last she was wan and
|
|
withered like the poorest, sickliest child you might come upon
|
|
in the streets of a great city in the arms of a homeless mother.
|
|
Then the night was quiet as the day, for the little creature
|
|
lay in her gorgeous cradle night and day with hardly a motion,
|
|
and indeed at last without even a moan, like one dead. At first
|
|
they often thought she was dead, but at last they got used to it,
|
|
and only consulted the almanac to find the moment when she would begin
|
|
to revive, which, of course, was with the first appearance of the
|
|
silver thread of the crescent moon. Then she would move her lips,
|
|
and they would give her a little nourishment; and she would grow better
|
|
and better and better, until for a few days she was splendidly well.
|
|
When well, she was always merriest out in the moonlight; but even
|
|
when near her worst, she seemed better when, in warm summer nights,
|
|
they carried her cradle out into the light of the waning moon.
|
|
Then in her sleep she would smile the faintest, most pitiful smile.
|
|
|
|
For a long time very few people ever saw her awake. As she grew
|
|
older she became such a favourite, however, that about the palace
|
|
there were always some who would contrive to keep awake at night,
|
|
in order to be near her. But she soon began to take every chance
|
|
of getting away from her nurses and enjoying her moonlight alone.
|
|
And thus things went on until she was nearly seventeen years of age.
|
|
Her father and mother had by that time got so used to the odd
|
|
state of things that they had ceased to wonder at them. All their
|
|
arrangements had reference to the state of the Princess Daylight,
|
|
and it is amazing how things contrive to accommodate themselves.
|
|
But how any prince was ever to find and deliver her,
|
|
appeared inconceivable.
|
|
|
|
As she grew older she had grown more and more beautiful, with the
|
|
sunniest hair and the loveliest eyes of heavenly blue, brilliant and
|
|
profound as the sky of a June day. But so much more painful and sad
|
|
was the change as her bad time came on. The more beautiful she
|
|
was in the full moon, the more withered and worn did she become
|
|
as the moon waned. At the time at which my story has now arrived,
|
|
she looked, when the moon was small or gone, like an old woman
|
|
exhausted with suffering. This was the more painful that her
|
|
appearance was unnatural; for her hair and eyes did not change.
|
|
Her wan face was both drawn and wrinkled, and had an eager hungry look.
|
|
Her skinny hands moved as if wishing, but unable, to lay hold
|
|
of something. Her shoulders were bent forward, her chest went in,
|
|
and she stooped as if she were eighty years old. At last she had
|
|
to be put to bed, and there await the flow of the tide of life.
|
|
But she grew to dislike being seen, still more being touched
|
|
by any hands, during this season. One lovely summer evening,
|
|
when the moon lay all but gone upon the verge of the horizon,
|
|
she vanished from her attendants, and it was only after searching
|
|
for her a long time in great terror, that they found her fast
|
|
asleep in the forest, at the foot of a silver birch, and carried
|
|
her home.
|
|
|
|
A little way from the palace there was a great open glade, covered with
|
|
the greenest and softest grass. This was her favourite haunt;
|
|
for here the full moon shone free and glorious, while through a vista
|
|
in the trees she could generally see more or less of the dying moon
|
|
as it crossed the opening. Here she had a little rustic house
|
|
built for her, and here she mostly resided. None of the court
|
|
might go there without leave, and her own attendants had learned
|
|
by this time not to be officious in waiting upon her, so that she
|
|
was very much at liberty. Whether the good fairies had anything
|
|
to do with it or not I cannot tell, but at last she got into the way
|
|
of retreating further into the wood every night as the moon waned,
|
|
so that sometimes they had great trouble in finding her; but as she
|
|
was always very angry if she discovered they were watching her,
|
|
they scarcely dared to do so. At length one night they thought they
|
|
had lost her altogether. It was morning before they found her.
|
|
Feeble as she was, she had wandered into a thicket a long way from
|
|
the glade, and there she lay--fast asleep, of course.
|
|
|
|
Although the fame of her beauty and sweetness had gone abroad,
|
|
yet as everybody knew she was under a bad spell, no king in the
|
|
neighbourhood had any desire to have her for a daughter-in-law.
|
|
There were serious objections to such a relation.
|
|
|
|
About this time in a neighbouring kingdom, in consequence of the
|
|
wickedness of the nobles, an insurrection took place upon the death
|
|
of the old king, the greater part of the nobility was massacred,
|
|
and the young prince was compelled to flee for his life, disguised
|
|
like a peasant. For some time, until he got out of the country,
|
|
he suffered much from hunger and fatigue; but when he got into
|
|
that ruled by the princess's father, and had no longer any fear
|
|
of being recognised, he fared better, for the people were kind.
|
|
He did not abandon his disguise, however. One tolerable reason
|
|
was that he had no other clothes to put on, and another that he
|
|
had very little money, and did not know where to get any more.
|
|
There was no good in telling everybody he met that he was a prince,
|
|
for he felt that a prince ought to be able to get on like other people,
|
|
else his rank only made a fool of him. He had read of princes
|
|
setting out upon adventure; and here he was out in similar case,
|
|
only without having had a choice in the matter. He would go on,
|
|
and see what would come of it.
|
|
|
|
For a day or two he had been walking through the palace-wood,
|
|
and had had next to nothing to eat, when he came upon the strangest
|
|
little house, inhabited by a very nice, tidy, motherly old woman.
|
|
This was one of the good fairies. The moment she saw him she knew quite
|
|
well who he was and what was going to come of it; but she was not at
|
|
liberty to interfere with the orderly march of events. She received
|
|
him with the kindness she would have shown to any other traveller,
|
|
and gave him bread and milk, which he thought the most delicious food
|
|
he had ever tasted, wondering that they did not have it for dinner at
|
|
the palace sometimes. The old woman pressed him to stay all night.
|
|
When he awoke he was amazed to find how well and strong he felt.
|
|
She would not take any of the money he offered, but begged him,
|
|
if he found occasion of continuing in the neighbourhood, to return
|
|
and occupy the same quarters.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you much, good mother," answered the prince; "but there is
|
|
little chance of that. The sooner I get out of this wood the better."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said the fairy.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?" asked the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Why, how should I know?" returned she.
|
|
|
|
"I can't tell," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," said the fairy.
|
|
|
|
"How strangely you talk!" said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Do I?" said the fairy.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, you do," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," said the fairy.
|
|
|
|
The prince was not used to be spoken to in this fashion, so he felt
|
|
a little angry, and turned and walked away. But this did not offend
|
|
the fairy. She stood at the door of her little house looking
|
|
after him till the trees hid him quite. Then she said "At last!"
|
|
and went in.
|
|
|
|
The prince wandered and wandered, and got nowhere. The sun sank
|
|
and sank and went out of sight, and he seemed no nearer the end
|
|
of the wood than ever. He sat down on a fallen tree, ate a bit
|
|
of bread the old woman had given him, and waited for the moon;
|
|
for, although he was not much of an astronomer, he knew the moon
|
|
would rise some time, because she had risen the night before.
|
|
Up she came, slow and slow, but of a good size, pretty nearly
|
|
round indeed; whereupon, greatly refreshed with his piece of bread,
|
|
he got up and went--he knew not whither.
|
|
|
|
After walking a considerable distance, he thought he was coming
|
|
to the outside of the forest; but when he reached what he thought
|
|
the last of it, he found himself only upon the edge of a great open
|
|
space in it, covered with grass. The moon shone very bright,
|
|
and he thought he had never seen a more lovely spot. Still it looked
|
|
dreary because of its loneliness, for he could not see the house at
|
|
the other side. He sat down, weary again, and gazed into the glade.
|
|
He had not seen so much room for several days.
|
|
|
|
All at once he spied something in the middle of the grass.
|
|
What could it be? It moved; it came nearer. Was it a human creature,
|
|
gliding across--a girl dressed in white, gleaming in the moonshine?
|
|
She came nearer and nearer. He crept behind a tree and watched,
|
|
wondering. It must be some strange being of the wood--a nymph whom
|
|
the moonlight and the warm dusky air had enticed from her tree.
|
|
But when she came close to where he stood, he no longer doubted she
|
|
was human--for he had caught sight of her sunny hair, and her clear
|
|
blue eyes, and the loveliest face and form that he had ever seen.
|
|
All at once she began singing like a nightingale, and dancing
|
|
to her own music, with her eyes ever turned towards the moon.
|
|
She passed close to where he stood, dancing on by the edge of the trees
|
|
and away in a great circle towards the other side, until he could see
|
|
but a spot of white in the yellowish green of the moonlit grass.
|
|
But when he feared it would vanish quite, the spot grew, and became
|
|
a figure once more. She approached him again, singing and dancing,
|
|
and waving her arms over her head, until she had completed the circle.
|
|
Just opposite his tree she stood, ceased her song, dropped her arms,
|
|
and broke out into a long clear laugh, musical as a brook. Then, as
|
|
if tired, she threw herself on the grass, and lay gazing at the moon.
|
|
The prince was almost afraid to breathe lest he should startle her,
|
|
and she should vanish from his sight. As to venturing near her,
|
|
that never came into his head.
|
|
|
|
She had lain for a long hour or longer, when the prince began again
|
|
to doubt concerning her. Perhaps she was but a vision of his own fancy.
|
|
Or was she a spirit of the wood, after all? If so, he too would
|
|
haunt the wood, glad to have lost kingdom and everything for the
|
|
hope of being near her. He would build him a hut in the forest,
|
|
and there he would live for the pure chance of seeing her again.
|
|
Upon nights like this at least she would come out and bask
|
|
in the moonlight, and make his soul blessed. But while he thus
|
|
dreamed she sprang to her feet, turned her face full to the moon,
|
|
and began singing as she would draw her down from the sky by the power
|
|
of her entrancing voice. She looked more beautiful than ever.
|
|
Again she began dancing to her own music, and danced away into
|
|
the distance. Once more she returned in a similar manner;
|
|
but although he was watching as eagerly as before, what with fatigue
|
|
and what with gazing, he fell fast asleep before she came near him.
|
|
When he awoke it was broad daylight, and the princess was nowhere.
|
|
|
|
He could not leave the place. What if she should come the next night!
|
|
He would gladly endure a day's hunger to see her yet again:
|
|
he would buckle his belt quite tight. He walked round the glade
|
|
to see if he could discover any prints of her feet. But the grass
|
|
was so short, and her steps had been so light, that she had not
|
|
left a single trace behind her. He walked half-way round the wood
|
|
without seeing anything to account for her presence. Then he
|
|
spied a lovely little house, with thatched roof and low eaves,
|
|
surrounded by an exquisite garden, with doves and peacocks walking
|
|
in it. Of course this must be where the gracious lady who loved
|
|
the moonlight lived. Forgetting his appearance, he walked towards
|
|
the door, determined to make inquiries, but as he passed a little
|
|
pond full of gold and silver fishes, he caught sight of himself
|
|
and turned to find the door to the kitchen. There he knocked,
|
|
and asked for a piece of bread. The good-natured cook brought him in,
|
|
and gave him an excellent breakfast, which the prince found nothing
|
|
the worse for being served in the kitchen. While he ate, he talked
|
|
with his entertainer, and learned that this was the favourite
|
|
retreat of the Princess Daylight. But he learned nothing more,
|
|
both because he was afraid of seeming inquisitive, and because the cook
|
|
did not choose to be heard talking about her mistress to a peasant
|
|
lad who had begged for his breakfast.
|
|
|
|
As he rose to take his leave, it occurred to him that he might
|
|
not be so far from the old woman's cottage as he had thought,
|
|
and he asked the cook whether she knew anything of such a place,
|
|
describing it as well as he could. She said she knew it well enough,
|
|
adding with a smile--
|
|
|
|
"It's there you're going, is it?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, if it's not far off."
|
|
|
|
"It's not more than three miles. But mind what you are about,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
"Why do you say that?"
|
|
|
|
"If you're after any mischief, she'll make you repent it."
|
|
|
|
"The best thing that could happen under the circumstances,"
|
|
remarked the prince.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by that?" asked the cook.
|
|
|
|
"Why, it stands to reason," answered the prince "that if you wish
|
|
to do anything wrong, the best thing for you is to be made to repent
|
|
of it."
|
|
|
|
"I see," said the cook. "Well, I think you may venture.
|
|
She's a good old soul."
|
|
|
|
"Which way does it lie from here?" asked the prince.
|
|
|
|
She gave him full instructions; and he left her with many thanks.
|
|
|
|
Being now refreshed, however, the prince did not go back to the cottage
|
|
that day: he remained in the forest, amusing himself as best he could,
|
|
but waiting anxiously for the night, in the hope that the princess
|
|
would again appear. Nor was he disappointed, for, directly the
|
|
moon rose, he spied a glimmering shape far across the glade.
|
|
As it drew nearer, he saw it was she indeed--not dressed in white
|
|
as before: in a pale blue like the sky, she looked lovelier still.
|
|
He thought it was that the blue suited her yet better than the white;
|
|
he did not know that she was really more beautiful because the
|
|
moon was nearer the full. In fact the next night was full moon,
|
|
and the princess would then be at the zenith of her loveliness.
|
|
|
|
The prince feared for some time that she was not coming near his
|
|
hiding-place that night; but the circles in her dance ever widened
|
|
as the moon rose, until at last they embraced the whole glade,
|
|
and she came still closer to the trees where he was hiding than she
|
|
had come the night before. He was entranced with her loveliness,
|
|
for it was indeed a marvellous thing. All night long he watched her,
|
|
but dared not go near her. He would have been ashamed of watching
|
|
her too, had he not become almost incapable of thinking of anything
|
|
but how beautiful she was. He watched the whole night long, and saw
|
|
that as the moon went down she retreated in smaller and smaller circles,
|
|
until at last he could see her no more.
|
|
|
|
Weary as he was, he set out for the old woman's cottage, where he
|
|
arrived just in time for her breakfast, which she shared with him.
|
|
He then went to bed, and slept for many hours. When he awoke
|
|
the sun was down, and he departed in great anxiety lest he should
|
|
lose a glimpse of the lovely vision. But, whether it was by the
|
|
machinations of the swamp-fairy, or merely that it is one thing
|
|
to go and another to return by the same road, he lost his way.
|
|
I shall not attempt to describe his misery when the moon rose,
|
|
and he saw nothing but trees, trees, trees.
|
|
|
|
She was high in the heavens before he reached the glade.
|
|
Then indeed his troubles vanished, for there was the princess
|
|
coming dancing towards him, in a dress that shone like gold,
|
|
and with shoes that glimmered through the grass like fireflies.
|
|
She was of course still more beautiful than before. Like an embodied
|
|
sunbeam she passed him, and danced away into the distance.
|
|
|
|
Before she returned in her circle, the clouds had begun to gather
|
|
about the moon. The wind rose, the trees moaned, and their lighter
|
|
branches leaned all one way before it. The prince feared that the
|
|
princess would go in, and he should see her no more that night.
|
|
But she came dancing on more jubilant than ever, her golden dress
|
|
and her sunny hair streaming out upon the blast, waving her arms
|
|
towards the moon, and in the exuberance of her delight ordering
|
|
the clouds away from off her face. The prince could hardly believe
|
|
she was not a creature of the elements, after all.
|
|
|
|
By the time she had completed another circle, the clouds had
|
|
gathered deep, and there were growlings of distant thunder.
|
|
Just as she passed the tree where he stood, a flash of lightning
|
|
blinded him for a moment, and when he saw again, to his horror,
|
|
the princess lay on the ground. He darted to her, thinking she
|
|
had been struck; but when she heard him coming, she was on her feet
|
|
in a moment.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"I beg your pardon. I thought--the lightning" said the prince,
|
|
hesitating.
|
|
|
|
"There's nothing the matter," said the princess, waving him off
|
|
rather haughtily.
|
|
|
|
The poor prince turned and walked towards the wood.
|
|
|
|
"Come back," said Daylight: "I like you. You do what you are told.
|
|
Are you good?"
|
|
|
|
"Not so good as I should like to be," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Then go and grow better," said the princess.
|
|
|
|
Again the disappointed prince turned and went.
|
|
|
|
"Come back," said the princess.
|
|
|
|
He obeyed, and stood before her waiting.
|
|
|
|
"Can you tell me what the sun is like?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"No," he answered. "But where's the good of asking what you know?"
|
|
|
|
"But I don't know," she rejoined.
|
|
|
|
"Why, everybody knows."
|
|
|
|
"That's the very thing: I'm not everybody. I've never seen the sun."
|
|
|
|
"Then you can't know what it's like till you do see it."
|
|
|
|
"I think you must be a prince," said the princess.
|
|
|
|
"Do I look like one?" said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"I can't quite say that."
|
|
|
|
"Then why do you think so?"
|
|
|
|
"Because you both do what you are told and speak the truth.--
|
|
Is the sun so very bright?"
|
|
|
|
"As bright as the lightning."
|
|
|
|
"But it doesn't go out like that, does it?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no. It shines like the moon, rises and sets like the moon,
|
|
is much the same shape as the moon, only so bright that you can't
|
|
look at it for a moment."
|
|
|
|
"But I would look at it," said the princess.
|
|
|
|
"But you couldn't," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"But I could," said the princess.
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I can't."
|
|
|
|
"Why can't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I can't wake. And I never shall wake until----"
|
|
|
|
Here she hid her face in her hands, turned away, and walked in
|
|
the slowest, stateliest manner towards the house. The prince ventured
|
|
to follow her at a little distance, but she turned and made a repellent
|
|
gesture, which, like a true gentleman-prince, he obeyed at once.
|
|
He waited a long time, but as she did not come near him again, and as
|
|
the night had now cleared, he set off at last for the old woman's cottage.
|
|
|
|
It was long past midnight when he reached it, but, to his surprise,
|
|
the old woman was paring potatoes at the door. Fairies are fond
|
|
of doing odd things. Indeed, however they may dissemble, the night
|
|
is always their day. And so it is with all who have fairy blood
|
|
in them.
|
|
|
|
"Why, what are you doing there, this time of the night, mother?"
|
|
said the prince; for that was the kind way in which any young man
|
|
in his country would address a woman who was much older than himself.
|
|
|
|
"Getting your supper ready, my son," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I don't want any supper," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! you've seen Daylight," said she.
|
|
|
|
"I've seen a princess who never saw it," said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Do you like her?" asked the fairy.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! don't I?" said the prince. "More than you would believe, mother."
|
|
|
|
"A fairy can believe anything that ever was or ever could be,"
|
|
said the old woman.
|
|
|
|
"Then are you a fairy?" asked the prince.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said she.
|
|
|
|
"Then what do you do for things not to believe?" asked the prince.
|
|
|
|
"There's plenty of them--everything that never was nor ever could be."
|
|
|
|
"Plenty, I grant you," said the prince. "But do you believe there
|
|
could be a princess who never saw the daylight? Do you believe
|
|
that now?"
|
|
|
|
This the prince said, not that he doubted the princess,
|
|
but that he wanted the fairy to tell him more.
|
|
She was too old a fairy, however, to be caught so easily.
|
|
|
|
"Of all people, fairies must not tell secrets. Besides, she's
|
|
a princess."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I'll tell you a secret. I'm a prince."
|
|
|
|
"I know that."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know it?"
|
|
|
|
"By the curl of the third eyelash on your left eyelid."
|
|
|
|
"Which corner do you count from?"
|
|
|
|
"That's a secret."
|
|
|
|
"Another secret? Well, at least, if I am a prince, there can
|
|
be no harm in telling me about a princess."
|
|
|
|
"It's just the princes I can't tell."
|
|
|
|
"There ain't any more of them--are there?" said the prince.
|
|
|
|
"What! you don't think you're the only prince in the world,
|
|
do you?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, dear, no! not at all. But I know there's one too many just
|
|
at present, except the princess----"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, that's it," said the fairy.
|
|
|
|
"What's it?" asked the prince.
|
|
|
|
But he could get nothing more out of the fairy, and had to go
|
|
to bed unanswered, which was something of a trial.
|
|
|
|
Now wicked fairies will not be bound by the law which the good fairies
|
|
obey, and this always seems to give the bad the advantage over the good,
|
|
for they use means to gain their ends which the others will not.
|
|
But it is all of no consequence, for what they do never succeeds; nay,
|
|
in the end it brings about the very thing they are trying to prevent.
|
|
So you see that somehow, for all their cleverness, wicked fairies
|
|
are dreadfully stupid, for, although from the beginning of the world
|
|
they have really helped instead of thwarting the good fairies,
|
|
not one of them is a bit wiser for it. She will try the bad
|
|
thing just as they all did before her; and succeeds no better of course.
|
|
|
|
The prince had so far stolen a march upon the swamp-fairy that she
|
|
did not know he was in the neighbourhood until after he had seen
|
|
the princess those three times. When she knew it, she consoled
|
|
herself by thinking that the princess must be far too proud and too
|
|
modest for any young man to venture even to speak to her before he
|
|
had seen her six times at least. But there was even less danger
|
|
than the wicked fairy thought; for, however much the princess
|
|
might desire to be set free, she was dreadfully afraid of the
|
|
wrong prince. Now, however, the fairy was going to do all she could.
|
|
|
|
She so contrived it by her deceitful spells, that the next night
|
|
the prince could not by any endeavour find his way to the glade.
|
|
It would take me too long to tell her tricks. They would
|
|
be amusing to us, who know that they could not do any harm,
|
|
but they were something other than amusing to the poor prince.
|
|
He wandered about the forest till daylight, and then fell fast asleep.
|
|
The same thing occurred for seven following days, during which neither
|
|
could he find the good fairy's cottage. After the third quarter
|
|
of the moon, however, the bad fairy thought she might be at ease
|
|
about the affair for a fortnight at least, for there was no chance
|
|
of the prince wishing to kiss the princess during that period.
|
|
So the first day of the fourth quarter he did find the cottage, and the
|
|
next day he found the glade. For nearly another week he haunted it.
|
|
But the princess never came. I have little doubt she was on the
|
|
farther edge of it some part of every night, but at this period she
|
|
always wore black, and, there being little or no light, the prince
|
|
never saw her. Nor would he have known her if he had seen her.
|
|
How could he have taken the worn decrepit creature she was now,
|
|
for the glorious Princess Daylight?
|
|
|
|
At last, one night when there was no moon at all, he ventured near
|
|
the house. There he heard voices talking, although it was past midnight;
|
|
for her women were in considerable uneasiness, because the one whose
|
|
turn it was to watch her had fallen asleep, and had not seen which
|
|
way she went, and this was a night when she would probably wander
|
|
very far, describing a circle which did not touch the open glade
|
|
at all, but stretched away from the back of the house, deep into
|
|
that side of the forest--a part of which the prince knew nothing.
|
|
When he understood from what they said that she had disappeared,
|
|
and that she must have gone somewhere in the said direction,
|
|
he plunged at once into the wood to see if he could find her.
|
|
For hours he roamed with nothing to guide him but the vague notion
|
|
of a circle which on one side bordered on the house, for so much
|
|
had he picked up from the talk he had overheard.
|
|
|
|
It was getting towards the dawn, but as yet there was no streak of light
|
|
in the sky, when he came to a great birch-tree, and sat down weary
|
|
at the foot of it. While he sat--very miserable, you may be sure--
|
|
full of fear for the princess, and wondering how her attendants
|
|
could take it so quietly, he bethought himself that it would not
|
|
be a bad plan to light a fire, which, if she were anywhere near,
|
|
would attract her. This he managed with a tinder-box, which the
|
|
good fairy had given him. It was just beginning to blaze up,
|
|
when he heard a moan, which seemed to come from the other side of
|
|
the tree. He sprung to his feet, but his heart throbbed so that he
|
|
had to lean for a moment against the tree before he could move.
|
|
When he got round, there lay a human form in a little dark heap
|
|
on the earth. There was light enough from his fire to show that it
|
|
was not the princess. He lifted it in his arms, hardly heavier
|
|
than a child, and carried it to the flame. The countenance
|
|
was that of an old woman, but it had a fearfully strange look.
|
|
A black hood concealed her hair, and her eyes were closed.
|
|
He laid her down as comfortably as he could, chafed her hands,
|
|
put a little cordial from a bottle, also the gift of the fairy,
|
|
into her mouth; took off his coat and wrapped it about her,
|
|
and in short did the best he could. In a little while she opened
|
|
her eyes and looked at him--so pitifully! The tears rose and
|
|
flowed from her grey wrinkled cheeks, but she said never a word.
|
|
She closed her eyes again, but the tears kept on flowing, and her
|
|
whole appearance was so utterly pitiful that the prince was near
|
|
crying too. He begged her to tell him what was the matter,
|
|
promising to do all he could to help her; but still she did not speak.
|
|
He thought she was dying, and took her in his arms again to carry
|
|
her to the princess's house, where he thought the good-natured
|
|
cook might he able to do something for her. When he lifted her,
|
|
the tears flowed yet faster, and she gave such a sad moan that it
|
|
went to his very heart.
|
|
|
|
"Mother, mother!" he said. "Poor mother!" and kissed her on
|
|
the withered lips.
|
|
|
|
She started; and what eyes they were that opened upon him!
|
|
But he did not see them, for it was still very dark, and he had
|
|
enough to do to make his way through the trees towards the house.
|
|
|
|
Just as he approached the door, feeling more tired than he could
|
|
have imagined possible--she was such a little thin old thing--
|
|
she began to move, and became so restless that, unable to carry her
|
|
a moment longer, he thought to lay her on the grass. But she stood
|
|
upright on her feet. Her hood had dropped, and her hair fell about her.
|
|
The first gleam of the morning was caught on her face: that face
|
|
was bright as the never-aging Dawn, and her eyes were lovely as the
|
|
sky of darkest blue. The prince recoiled in overmastering wonder.
|
|
It was Daylight herself whom he had brought from the forest!
|
|
He fell at her feet, nor dared to look up until she laid her hand
|
|
upon his head. He rose then.
|
|
|
|
"You kissed me when I was an old woman: there! I kiss you when I
|
|
am a young princess," murmured Daylight.--"Is that the sun coming?"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIX
|
|
|
|
RUBY
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE children were delighted with the story, and made many amusing
|
|
remarks upon it. Mr. Raymond promised to search his brain for another,
|
|
and when he had found one to bring it to them. Diamond having
|
|
taken leave of Nanny, and promised to go and see her again soon,
|
|
went away with him.
|
|
|
|
Now Mr. Raymond had been turning over in his mind what he could do both
|
|
for Diamond and for Nanny. He had therefore made some acquaintance
|
|
with Diamond's father, and had been greatly pleased with him.
|
|
But he had come to the resolution, before he did anything so good
|
|
as he would like to do for them, to put them all to a certain test.
|
|
So as they walked away together, he began to talk with Diamond
|
|
as follows:--
|
|
|
|
"Nanny must leave the hospital soon, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"I'm glad of that, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Why? Don't you think it's a nice place?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, very. But it's better to be well and doing something, you know,
|
|
even if it's not quite so comfortable."
|
|
|
|
"But they can't keep Nanny so long as they would like. They can't
|
|
keep her till she's quite strong. There are always so many sick
|
|
children they want to take in and make better. And the question is,
|
|
What will she do when they send her out again?"
|
|
|
|
"That's just what I can't tell, though I've been thinking of it
|
|
over and over, sir. Her crossing was taken long ago, and I couldn't
|
|
bear to see Nanny fighting for it, especially with such a poor
|
|
fellow as has taken it. He's quite lame, sir."
|
|
|
|
"She doesn't look much like fighting, now, does she, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"No, sir. She looks too like an angel. Angels don't fight--
|
|
do they, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"Not to get things for themselves, at least," said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"Besides," added Diamond, "I don't quite see that she would have
|
|
any better right to the crossing than the boy who has got it.
|
|
Nobody gave it to her; she only took it. And now he has taken it."
|
|
|
|
"If she were to sweep a crossing--soon at least--after the illness
|
|
she has had, she would be laid up again the very first wet day,"
|
|
said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"And there's hardly any money to be got except on the wet days,"
|
|
remarked Diamond reflectively. "Is there nothing else she
|
|
could do, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"Not without being taught, I'm afraid."
|
|
|
|
"Well, couldn't somebody teach her something?"
|
|
|
|
"Couldn't you teach her, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know anything myself, sir. I could teach her to dress the,
|
|
baby; but nobody would give her anything for doing things like that:
|
|
they are so easy. There wouldn't be much good in teaching
|
|
her to drive a cab, for where would she get the cab to drive?
|
|
There ain't fathers and old Diamonds everywhere. At least poor
|
|
Nanny can't find any of them, I doubt."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps if she were taught to be nice and clean, and only speak
|
|
gentle words"
|
|
|
|
"Mother could teach her that," interrupted Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"And to dress babies, and feed them, and take care of them,"
|
|
Mr. Raymond proceeded, "she might get a place as a nurse somewhere,
|
|
you know. People do give money for that."
|
|
|
|
"Then I'll ask mother," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"But you'll have to give her her food then; and your father,
|
|
not being strong, has enough to do already without that."
|
|
|
|
"But here's me," said Diamond: "I help him out with it. When he's tired
|
|
of driving, up I get. It don't make any difference to old Diamond.
|
|
I don't mean he likes me as well as my father--of course he can't,
|
|
you know--nobody could; but he does his duty all the same.
|
|
It's got to be done, you know, sir; and Diamond's a good horse--
|
|
isn't he, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"From your description I should say certainly; but I have not
|
|
the pleasure of his acquaintance myself."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think he will go to heaven, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"That I don't know anything about," said Mr. Raymond. "I confess
|
|
I should be glad to think so," he added, smiling thoughtfully.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sure he'll get to the back of the north wind, anyhow,"
|
|
said Diamond to himself; but he had learned to be very careful
|
|
of saying such things aloud.
|
|
|
|
"Isn't it rather too much for him to go in the cab all day
|
|
and every day?" resumed Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"So father says, when he feels his ribs of a morning. But then he
|
|
says the old horse do eat well, and the moment he's had his supper,
|
|
down he goes, and never gets up till he's called; and, for the legs
|
|
of him, father says that makes no end of a differ. Some horses, sir! they
|
|
won't lie down all night long, but go to sleep on their four pins,
|
|
like a haystack, father says. I think it's very stupid of them,
|
|
and so does old Diamond. But then I suppose they don't know better,
|
|
and so they can't help it. We mustn't be too hard upon them,
|
|
father says."
|
|
|
|
"Your father must be a good man, Diamond." Diamond looked up
|
|
in Mr. Raymond's face, wondering what he could mean.
|
|
|
|
"I said your father must be a good man, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"Of course," said Diamond. "How could he drive a cab if he wasn't?"
|
|
|
|
"There are some men who drive cabs who are not very good,"
|
|
objected Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
Diamond remembered the drunken cabman, and saw that his friend
|
|
was right.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, but," he returned, "he must be, you know, with such a horse
|
|
as old Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"That does make a difference," said Mr. Raymond. "But it is quite
|
|
enough that he is a good man without our trying to account for it.
|
|
Now, if you like, I will give you a proof that I think him a good man.
|
|
I am going away on the Continent for a while--for three months,
|
|
I believe--and I am going to let my house to a gentleman who does
|
|
not want the use of my brougham. My horse is nearly as old, I fancy,
|
|
as your Diamond, but I don't want to part with him, and I don't
|
|
want him to be idle; for nobody, as you say, ought to be idle;
|
|
but neither do I want him to be worked very hard. Now, it has come
|
|
into my head that perhaps your father would take charge of him,
|
|
and work him under certain conditions."
|
|
|
|
"My father will do what's right," said Diamond. "I'm sure of that."
|
|
|
|
"Well, so I think. Will you ask him when he comes home to call
|
|
and have a little chat with me--to-day, some time?"
|
|
|
|
"He must have his dinner first," said Diamond. "No, he's got
|
|
his dinner with him to-day. It must be after he's had his tea."
|
|
|
|
"Of course, of course. Any time will do. I shall be at home
|
|
all day."
|
|
|
|
"Very well, sir. I will tell him. You may be sure he will come.
|
|
My father thinks you a very kind gentleman, and I know he is right,
|
|
for I know your very own self, sir."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Raymond smiled, and as they had now reached his door,
|
|
they parted, and Diamond went home. As soon as his father entered
|
|
the house, Diamond gave him Mr. Raymond's message, and recounted
|
|
the conversation that had preceded it. His father said little,
|
|
but took thought-sauce to his bread and butter, and as soon as he
|
|
had finished his meal, rose, saying:
|
|
|
|
"I will go to your friend directly, Diamond. It would be a grand thing
|
|
to get a little more money. We do want it." Diamond accompanied
|
|
his father to Mr. Raymond's door, and there left him.
|
|
|
|
He was shown at once into Mr. Raymond's study, where he gazed with
|
|
some wonder at the multitude of books on the walls, and thought
|
|
what a learned man Mr. Raymond must be.
|
|
|
|
Presently Mr. Raymond entered, and after saying much the same
|
|
about his old horse, made the following distinct proposal--
|
|
one not over-advantageous to Diamond's father, but for which he
|
|
had reasons--namely, that Joseph should have the use of Mr. Raymond's
|
|
horse while he was away, on condition that he never worked him
|
|
more than six hours a day, and fed him well, and that, besides,
|
|
he should take Nanny home as soon as she was able to leave
|
|
the hospital, and provide for her as one of his own children,
|
|
neither better nor worse--so long, that is, as he had the horse.
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father could not help thinking it a pretty close bargain.
|
|
He should have both the girl and the horse to feed, and only six hours'
|
|
work out of the horse.
|
|
|
|
"It will save your own horse," said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"That is true," answered Joseph; "but all I can get by my own horse
|
|
is only enough to keep us, and if I save him and feed your horse
|
|
and the girl--don't you see, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, you can go home and think about it, and let me know
|
|
by the end of the week. I am in no hurry before then."
|
|
|
|
So Joseph went home and recounted the proposal to his wife,
|
|
adding that he did not think there was much advantage to be got
|
|
out of it.
|
|
|
|
"Not much that way, husband," said Diamond's mother; "but there
|
|
would be an advantage, and what matter who gets it!"
|
|
|
|
"I don't see it," answered her husband. "Mr. Raymond is a gentleman
|
|
of property, and I don't discover any much good in helping him to save
|
|
a little more. He won't easily get one to make such a bargain, and I
|
|
don't mean he shall get me. It would be a loss rather than a gain--
|
|
I do think--at least if I took less work out of our own horse."
|
|
|
|
"One hour would make a difference to old Diamond. But that's
|
|
not the main point. You must think what an advantage it would
|
|
be to the poor girl that hasn't a home to go to!"
|
|
|
|
"She is one of Diamond's friends," thought his father.
|
|
|
|
"I could be kind to her, you know," the mother went on, "and teach
|
|
her housework, and how to handle a baby; and, besides, she would
|
|
help me, and I should be the stronger for it, and able to do an odd
|
|
bit of charing now and then, when I got the chance."
|
|
|
|
"I won't hear of that," said her husband. "Have the girl by all means.
|
|
I'm ashamed I did not think of both sides of the thing at once.
|
|
I wonder if the horse is a great eater. To be sure, if I gave Diamond
|
|
two hours' additional rest, it would be all the better for the old bones
|
|
of him, and there would be four hours extra out of the other horse.
|
|
That would give Diamond something to do every day. He could drive
|
|
old Diamond after dinner, and I could take the other horse out for
|
|
six hours after tea, or in the morning, as I found best. It might
|
|
pay for the keep of both of them,--that is, if I had good luck.
|
|
I should like to oblige Mr. Raymond, though he be rather hard,
|
|
for he has been very kind to our Diamond, wife. Hasn't he now?"
|
|
|
|
"He has indeed, Joseph," said his wife, and there the conversation ended.
|
|
|
|
Diamond's father went the very next day to Mr. Raymond, and accepted
|
|
his proposal; so that the week after having got another stall in
|
|
the same stable, he had two horses instead of one. Oddly enough,
|
|
the name of the new horse was Ruby, for he was a very red chestnut.
|
|
Diamond's name came from a white lozenge on his forehead.
|
|
Young Diamond said they were rich now, with such a big diamond and
|
|
such a big ruby.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXX
|
|
|
|
NANNY'S DREAM
|
|
|
|
|
|
NANNY was not fit to be moved for some time yet, and Diamond went
|
|
to see her as often as he could. But being more regularly engaged now,
|
|
seeing he went out every day for a few hours with old Diamond,
|
|
and had his baby to mind, and one of the horses to attend to,
|
|
he could not go so often as he would have liked.
|
|
|
|
One evening, as he sat by her bedside, she said to him:
|
|
|
|
"I've had such a beautiful dream, Diamond! I should like to tell
|
|
it you."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! do," said Diamond; "I am so fond of dreams!"
|
|
|
|
"She must have been to the back of the north wind," he said to himself.
|
|
|
|
"It was a very foolish dream, you know. But somehow it was so pleasant!
|
|
What a good thing it is that you believe the dream all the time
|
|
you are in it!"
|
|
|
|
My readers must not suppose that poor Nanny was able to say what she
|
|
meant so well as I put it down here. She had never been to school,
|
|
and had heard very little else than vulgar speech until she
|
|
came to the hospital. But I have been to school, and although
|
|
that could never make me able to dream so well as Nanny, it has
|
|
made me able to tell her dream better than she could herself.
|
|
And I am the more desirous of doing this for her that I have already
|
|
done the best I could for Diamond's dream, and it would be a shame
|
|
to give the boy all the advantage.
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you all I know about it," said Nanny. "The day
|
|
before yesterday, a lady came to see us--a very beautiful lady,
|
|
and very beautifully dressed. I heard the matron say to her that it
|
|
was very kind of her to come in blue and gold; and she answered that she
|
|
knew we didn't like dull colours. She had such a lovely shawl on,
|
|
just like redness dipped in milk, and all worked over with flowers
|
|
of the same colour. It didn't shine much, it was silk, but it kept
|
|
in the shine. When she came to my bedside, she sat down, just where
|
|
you are sitting, Diamond, and laid her hand on the counterpane.
|
|
I was sitting up, with my table before me ready for my tea. Her hand
|
|
looked so pretty in its blue glove, that I was tempted to stroke it.
|
|
I thought she wouldn't be angry, for everybody that comes to the
|
|
hospital is kind. It's only in the streets they ain't kind.
|
|
But she drew her hand away, and I almost cried, for I thought I
|
|
had been rude. Instead of that, however, it was only that she
|
|
didn't like giving me her glove to stroke, for she drew it off,
|
|
and then laid her hand where it was before. I wasn't sure, but I
|
|
ventured to put out my ugly hand."
|
|
|
|
"Your hand ain't ugly, Nanny," said Diamond; but Nanny went on--
|
|
|
|
"And I stroked it again, and then she stroked mine,--think of that!
|
|
And there was a ring on her finger, and I looked down to see what it
|
|
was like. And she drew it off, and put it upon one of my fingers.
|
|
It was a red stone, and she told me they called it a ruby."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, that is funny!" said Diamond. "Our new horse is called Ruby.
|
|
We've got another horse--a red one--such a beauty!"
|
|
|
|
But Nanny went on with her story.
|
|
|
|
"I looked at the ruby all the time the lady was talking to me,--
|
|
it was so beautiful! And as she talked I kept seeing deeper and deeper
|
|
into the stone. At last she rose to go away, and I began to pull
|
|
the ring off my finger; and what do you think she said?--"Wear
|
|
it all night, if you like. Only you must take care of it.
|
|
I can't give it you, for some one gave it to me; but you may keep it
|
|
till to-morrow." Wasn't it kind of her? I could hardly take my tea,
|
|
I was so delighted to hear it; and I do think it was the ring
|
|
that set me dreaming; for, after I had taken my tea, I leaned back,
|
|
half lying and half sitting, and looked at the ring on my finger.
|
|
By degrees I began to dream. The ring grew larger and larger,
|
|
until at last I found that I was not looking at a red stone,
|
|
but at a red sunset, which shone in at the end of a long street
|
|
near where Grannie lives. I was dressed in rags as I used to be,
|
|
and I had great holes in my shoes, at which the nasty mud came
|
|
through to my feet. I didn't use to mind it before, but now I thought
|
|
it horrid. And there was the great red sunset, with streaks of green
|
|
and gold between, standing looking at me. Why couldn't I live in
|
|
the sunset instead of in that dirt? Why was it so far away always?
|
|
Why did it never come into our wretched street? It faded away,
|
|
as the sunsets always do, and at last went out altogether.
|
|
Then a cold wind began to blow, and flutter all my rags about----"
|
|
|
|
"That was North Wind herself," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Eh?" said Nanny, and went on with her story.
|
|
|
|
"I turned my back to it, and wandered away. I did not know where I
|
|
was going, only it was warmer to go that way. I don't think it
|
|
was a north wind, for I found myself in the west end at last.
|
|
But it doesn't matter in a dream which wind it was."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said Diamond. "I believe North Wind can get
|
|
into our dreams--yes, and blow in them. Sometimes she has blown
|
|
me out of a dream altogether."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean, Diamond," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"Never mind," answered Diamond. "Two people can't always understand
|
|
each other. They'd both be at the back of the north wind directly,
|
|
and what would become of the other places without them?"
|
|
|
|
"You do talk so oddly!" said Nanny. "I sometimes think they must
|
|
have been right about you."
|
|
|
|
"What did they say about me?" asked Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"They called you God's baby."
|
|
|
|
"How kind of them! But I knew that."
|
|
|
|
"Did you know what it meant, though? It meant that you were not
|
|
right in the head."
|
|
|
|
"I feel all right," said Diamond, putting both hands to his head,
|
|
as if it had been a globe he could take off and set on again.
|
|
|
|
"Well, as long as you are pleased I am pleased," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, Nanny. Do go on with your story. I think I like
|
|
dreams even better than fairy tales. But they must be nice ones,
|
|
like yours, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I went on, keeping my back to the wind, until I came to a fine
|
|
street on the top of a hill. How it happened I don't know, but the
|
|
front door of one of the houses was open, and not only the front door,
|
|
but the back door as well, so that I could see right through the house--
|
|
and what do you think I saw? A garden place with green grass,
|
|
and the moon shining upon it! Think of that! There was no moon
|
|
in the street, but through the house there was the moon. I looked
|
|
and there was nobody near: I would not do any harm, and the grass
|
|
was so much nicer than the mud! But I couldn't think of going on
|
|
the grass with such dirty shoes: I kicked them off in the gutter,
|
|
and ran in on my bare feet, up the steps, and through the house,
|
|
and on to the grass; and the moment I came into the moonlight,
|
|
I began to feel better."
|
|
|
|
"That's why North Wind blew you there," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"It came of Mr. Raymond's story about Princess Daylight," returned Nanny.
|
|
"Well, I lay down upon the grass in the moonlight without thinking
|
|
how I was to get out again. Somehow the moon suited me exactly.
|
|
There was not a breath of the north wind you talk about; it was
|
|
quite gone."
|
|
|
|
"You didn't want her any more, just then. She never goes where she's
|
|
not wanted," said Diamond. "But she blew you into the moonlight, anyhow."
|
|
|
|
"Well, we won't dispute about it," said Nanny: "you've got
|
|
a tile loose, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Suppose I have," returned Diamond, "don't you see it may let
|
|
in the moonlight, or the sunlight for that matter?"
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps yes, perhaps no," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"And you've got your dreams, too, Nanny."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but I know they're dreams."
|
|
|
|
"So do I. But I know besides they are something more as well."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! do you?" rejoined Nanny. "I don't."
|
|
|
|
"All right," said Diamond. "Perhaps you will some day."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps I won't," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
Diamond held his peace, and Nanny resumed her story.
|
|
|
|
"I lay a long time, and the moonlight got in at every tear
|
|
in my clothes, and made me feel so happy----"
|
|
|
|
"There, I tell you!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What do you tell me?" returned Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"North Wind----"
|
|
|
|
"It was the moonlight, I tell you," persisted Nanny, and again
|
|
Diamond held his peace.
|
|
|
|
"All at once I felt that the moon was not shining so strong.
|
|
I looked up, and there was a cloud, all crapey and fluffy,
|
|
trying to drown the beautiful creature. But the moon was so round,
|
|
just like a whole plate, that the cloud couldn't stick to her.
|
|
She shook it off, and said there and shone out clearer and brighter
|
|
than ever. But up came a thicker cloud,--and "You shan't,"
|
|
said the moon; and "I will," said the cloud,--but it couldn't: out
|
|
shone the moon, quite laughing at its impudence. I knew her ways,
|
|
for I've always been used to watch her. She's the only thing worth
|
|
looking at in our street at night."
|
|
|
|
"Don't call it your street," said Diamond. "You're not going back
|
|
to it. You're coming to us, you know."
|
|
|
|
"That's too good to be true," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"There are very few things good enough to be true," said Diamond;
|
|
"but I hope this is. Too good to be true it can't be. Isn't true
|
|
good? and isn't good good? And how, then, can anything be too good
|
|
to be true? That's like old Sal--to say that."
|
|
|
|
"Don't abuse Grannie, Diamond. She's a horrid old thing,
|
|
she and her gin bottle; but she'll repent some day, and then
|
|
you'll be glad not to have said anything against her."
|
|
|
|
"Why?" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Because you'll be sorry for her."
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry for her now."
|
|
|
|
"Very well. That's right. She'll be sorry too. And there'll
|
|
be an end of it."
|
|
|
|
"All right. You come to us," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Where was I?" said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"Telling me how the moon served the clouds."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. But it wouldn't do, all of it. Up came the clouds and the clouds,
|
|
and they came faster and faster, until the moon was covered up.
|
|
You couldn't expect her to throw off a hundred of them at once--
|
|
could you?"
|
|
|
|
"Certainly not," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"So it grew very dark; and a dog began to yelp in the house. I looked
|
|
and saw that the door to the garden was shut. Presently it was opened--
|
|
not to let me out, but to let the dog in--yelping and bounding.
|
|
I thought if he caught sight of me, I was in for a biting first,
|
|
and the police after. So I jumped up, and ran for a little
|
|
summer-house in the corner of the garden. The dog came after me,
|
|
but I shut the door in his face. It was well it had a door--
|
|
wasn't it?"
|
|
|
|
"You dreamed of the door because you wanted it," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No, I didn't; it came of itself. It was there, in the true dream."
|
|
|
|
"There--I've caught you!" said Diamond. "I knew you believed
|
|
in the dream as much as I do."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, well, if you will lay traps for a body!" said Nanny.
|
|
"Anyhow, I was safe inside the summer-house. And what do you think?--
|
|
There was the moon beginning to shine again--but only through
|
|
one of the panes--and that one was just the colour of the ruby.
|
|
Wasn't it funny?"
|
|
|
|
"No, not a bit funny," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"If you will be contrary!" said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"No, no," said Diamond; "I only meant that was the very pane I
|
|
should have expected her to shine through."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, very well!" returned Nanny.
|
|
|
|
What Diamond meant, I do not pretend to say. He had curious notions
|
|
about things.
|
|
|
|
"And now," said Nanny, "I didn't know what to do, for the dog kept
|
|
barking at the door, and I couldn't get out. But the moon was so
|
|
beautiful that I couldn't keep from looking at it through the red pane.
|
|
And as I looked it got larger and larger till it filled the whole
|
|
pane and outgrew it, so that I could see it through the other panes;
|
|
and it grew till it filled them too and the whole window, so that
|
|
the summer-house was nearly as bright as day.
|
|
|
|
"The dog stopped barking, and I heard a gentle tapping at the door,
|
|
like the wind blowing a little branch against it."
|
|
|
|
"Just like her," said Diamond, who thought everything strange
|
|
and beautiful must be done by North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"So I turned from the window and opened the door; and what do you
|
|
think I saw?"
|
|
|
|
"A beautiful lady," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No--the moon itself, as big as a little house, and as round
|
|
as a ball, shining like yellow silver. It stood on the grass--
|
|
down on the very grass: I could see nothing else for the
|
|
brightness of it: And as I stared and wondered, a door opened
|
|
in the side of it, near the ground, and a curious little old man,
|
|
with a crooked thing over his shoulder, looked out, and said:
|
|
'Come along, Nanny; my lady wants you. We're come to fetch you."
|
|
I wasn't a bit frightened. I went up to the beautiful bright thing,
|
|
and the old man held down his hand, and I took hold of it,
|
|
and gave a jump, and he gave me a lift, and I was inside the moon.
|
|
And what do you think it was like? It was such a pretty little house,
|
|
with blue windows and white curtains! At one of the windows sat
|
|
a beautiful lady, with her head leaning on her hand, looking out.
|
|
She seemed rather sad, and I was sorry for her, and stood staring
|
|
at her.
|
|
|
|
"`You didn't think I had such a beautiful mistress as that!'
|
|
said the queer little man. `No, indeed!' I answered: `who would have
|
|
thought it?' `Ah! who indeed? But you see you don't know everything.'
|
|
The little man closed the door, and began to pull at a rope which hung
|
|
behind it with a weight at the end. After he had pulled a while,
|
|
he said--`There, that will do; we're all right now.' Then he took
|
|
me by the hand and opened a little trap in the floor, and led me
|
|
down two or three steps, and I saw like a great hole below me.
|
|
`Don't be frightened,' said the tittle man. `It's not a hole.
|
|
It's only a window. Put your face down and look through.' I did as he
|
|
told me, and there was the garden and the summer-house, far away,
|
|
lying at the bottom of the moonlight. `There!' said the little man;
|
|
`we've brought you off! Do you see the little dog barking at us
|
|
down there in the garden?' I told him I couldn't see anything
|
|
so far. `Can you see anything so small and so far off?' I said.
|
|
`Bless you, child!' said the little man; `I could pick up a needle
|
|
out of the grass if I had only a long enough arm. There's one
|
|
lying by the door of the summer-house now.' I looked at his eyes.
|
|
They were very small, but so bright that I think he saw by the light
|
|
that went out of them. Then he took me up, and up again by a little
|
|
stair in a corner of the room, and through another trapdoor,
|
|
and there was one great round window above us, and I saw the blue
|
|
sky and the clouds, and such lots of stars, all so big and shining
|
|
as hard as ever they could!"
|
|
|
|
"The little girl-angels had been polishing them," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"What nonsense you do talk!" said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"But my nonsense is just as good as yours, Nanny. When you have done,
|
|
I'll tell you my dream. The stars are in it--not the moon, though.
|
|
She was away somewhere. Perhaps she was gone to fetch you then.
|
|
I don't think that, though, for my dream was longer ago than yours.
|
|
She might have been to fetch some one else, though; for we can't
|
|
fancy it's only us that get such fine things done for them.
|
|
But do tell me what came next."
|
|
|
|
Perhaps one of my child-readers may remember whether the moon came
|
|
down to fetch him or her the same night that Diamond had his dream.
|
|
I cannot tell, of course. I know she did not come to fetch me,
|
|
though I did think I could make her follow me when I was a boy--
|
|
not a very tiny one either.
|
|
|
|
"The little man took me all round the house, and made me look
|
|
out of every window. Oh, it was beautiful! There we were,
|
|
all up in the air, in such a nice, clean little house! `Your work
|
|
will be to keep the windows bright,' said the little man.
|
|
`You won't find it very difficult, for there ain't much dust up here.
|
|
Only, the frost settles on them sometimes, and the drops of rain
|
|
leave marks on them.' `I can easily clean them inside,' I said;
|
|
`but how am I to get the frost and rain off the outside of them?'
|
|
`Oh!' he said, `it's quite easy. There are ladders all about.
|
|
You've only got to go out at the door, and climb about. There are
|
|
a great many windows you haven't seen yet, and some of them look into
|
|
places you don't know anything about. I used to clean them myself,
|
|
but I'm getting rather old, you see. Ain't I now?' `I can't tell,'
|
|
I answered. `You see I never saw you when you were younger.'
|
|
`Never saw the man in the moon?' said he. `Not very near,'
|
|
I answered, `not to tell how young or how old he looked. I have
|
|
seen the bundle of sticks on his back.' For Jim had pointed that
|
|
out to me. Jim was very fond of looking at the man in the moon.
|
|
Poor Jim! I wonder he hasn't been to see me. I'm afraid he's
|
|
ill too."
|
|
|
|
"I'll try to find out," said Diamond, "and let you know."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you," said Nanny. "You and Jim ought to be friends."
|
|
|
|
"But what did the man in the moon say, when you told him you had
|
|
seen him with the bundle of sticks on his back?"
|
|
|
|
"He laughed. But I thought he looked offended too. His little
|
|
nose turned up sharper, and he drew the corners of his mouth down
|
|
from the tips of his ears into his neck. But he didn't look cross,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
"Didn't he say anything?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes! He said: `That's all nonsense. What you saw was my bundle
|
|
of dusters. I was going to clean the windows. It takes a good many,
|
|
you know. Really, what they do say of their superiors down there!'
|
|
`It's only because they don't know better,' I ventured to say.
|
|
`Of course, of course,' said the little man. `Nobody ever does
|
|
know better. Well, I forgive them, and that sets it all right,
|
|
I hope.' `It's very good of you,' I said. `No!' said he, `it's not
|
|
in the least good of me. I couldn't be comfortable otherwise.'
|
|
After this he said nothing for a while, and I laid myself on the floor
|
|
of his garret, and stared up and around at the great blue beautifulness.
|
|
I had forgotten him almost, when at last he said: `Ain't you done yet?'
|
|
`Done what?' I asked. `Done saying your prayers,' says he.
|
|
'I wasn't saying my prayers,' I answered. `Oh, yes, you were,'
|
|
said he, `though you didn't know it! And now I must show you
|
|
something else.'
|
|
|
|
"He took my hand and led me down the stair again, and through
|
|
a narrow passage, and through another, and another, and another.
|
|
I don't know how there could be room for so many passages in such
|
|
a little house. The heart of it must be ever so much farther from
|
|
the sides than they are from each other. How could it have an
|
|
inside that was so independent of its outside? There's the point.
|
|
It was funny--wasn't it, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"No," said Diamond. He was going to say that that was very much
|
|
the sort of thing at the back of the north wind; but he checked
|
|
himself and only added, "All right. I don't see it. I don't see
|
|
why the inside should depend on the outside. It ain't so with
|
|
the crabs. They creep out of their outsides and make new ones.
|
|
Mr. Raymond told me so."
|
|
|
|
"I don't see what that has got to do with it," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"Then go on with your story, please," said Diamond. "What did
|
|
you come to, after going through all those winding passages into
|
|
the heart of the moon?"
|
|
|
|
"I didn't say they were winding passages. I said they were long
|
|
and narrow. They didn't wind. They went by corners."
|
|
|
|
"That's worth knowing," remarked Diamond. "For who knows how soon
|
|
he may have to go there? But the main thing is, what did you come
|
|
to at last?"
|
|
|
|
"We came to a small box against the wall of a tiny room.
|
|
The little man told me to put my ear against it. I did so,
|
|
and heard a noise something like the purring of a cat, only not
|
|
so loud, and much sweeter. `What is it?' I asked. `Don't you
|
|
know the sound?' returned the little man. `No,' I answered.
|
|
`Don't you know the sound of bees?' he said. I had never heard bees,
|
|
and could not know the sound of them. `Those are my lady's bees,'
|
|
he went on. I had heard that bees gather honey from the flowers.
|
|
`But where are the flowers for them?' I asked. `My lady's bees
|
|
gather their honey from the sun and the stars,' said the little man.
|
|
`Do let me see them,' I said. `No. I daren't do that,' he answered.
|
|
`I have no business with them. I don't understand them.
|
|
Besides, they are so bright that if one were to fly into your eye,
|
|
it would blind you altogether.' `Then you have seen them?'
|
|
`Oh, yes! Once or twice, I think. But I don't quite know:
|
|
they are so very bright--like buttons of lightning. Now I've
|
|
showed you all I can to-night, and we'll go back to the room.'
|
|
I followed him, and he made me sit down under a lamp that hung from
|
|
the roof, and gave me some bread and honey.
|
|
|
|
"The lady had never moved. She sat with her forehead leaning
|
|
on her hand, gazing out of the little window, hung like the rest
|
|
with white cloudy curtains. From where I was sitting I looked out
|
|
of it too, but I could see nothing. Her face was very beautiful,
|
|
and very white, and very still, and her hand was as white as
|
|
the forehead that leaned on it. I did not see her whole face--
|
|
only the side of it, for she never moved to turn it full upon me,
|
|
or even to look at me.
|
|
|
|
"How long I sat after I had eaten my bread and honey, I don't know.
|
|
The little man was busy about the room, pulling a string here,
|
|
and a string there, but chiefly the string at the back of the door.
|
|
I was thinking with some uneasiness that he would soon be wanting
|
|
me to go out and clean the windows, and I didn't fancy the job.
|
|
At last he came up to me with a great armful of dusters. `It's time
|
|
you set about the windows,' he said; `for there's rain coming,
|
|
and if they're quite clean before, then the rain can't spoil them.'
|
|
I got up at once. `You needn't be afraid,' he said. `You won't
|
|
tumble off. Only you must be careful. Always hold on with one hand
|
|
while you rub with the other.' As he spoke, he opened the door.
|
|
I started back in a terrible fright, for there was nothing but blue
|
|
air to be seen under me, like a great water without a bottom at all.
|
|
But what must be must, and to live up here was so much nicer
|
|
than down in the mud with holes in my shoes, that I never thought
|
|
of not doing as I was told. The little man showed me how and
|
|
where to lay hold while I put my foot round the edge of the door
|
|
on to the first round of a ladder. `Once you're up,' he said,
|
|
`you'll see how you have to go well enough.' I did as he told me,
|
|
and crept out very carefully. Then the little man handed me the
|
|
bundle of dusters, saying, `I always carry them on my reaping hook,
|
|
but I don't think you could manage it properly. You shall have
|
|
it if you like.' I wouldn't take it, however, for it looked
|
|
dangerous.
|
|
|
|
"I did the best I could with the dusters, and crawled up to the
|
|
top of the moon. But what a grand sight it was! The stars
|
|
were all over my head, so bright and so near that I could almost
|
|
have laid hold of them. The round ball to which I clung went
|
|
bobbing and floating away through the dark blue above and below
|
|
and on every side. It was so beautiful that all fear left me,
|
|
and I set to work diligently. I cleaned window after window.
|
|
At length I came to a very little one, in at which I peeped.
|
|
There was the room with the box of bees in it! I laid my ear
|
|
to the window, and heard the musical hum quite distinctly.
|
|
A great longing to see them came upon me, and I opened the window
|
|
and crept in. The little box had a door like a closet. I opened it--
|
|
the tiniest crack--when out came the light with such a sting that I
|
|
closed it again in terror--not, however, before three bees had shot
|
|
out into the room, where they darted about like flashes of lightning.
|
|
Terribly frightened, I tried to get out of the window again, but I
|
|
could not: there was no way to the outside of the moon but through
|
|
the door; and that was in the room where the lady sat. No sooner
|
|
had I reached the room, than the three bees, which had followed me,
|
|
flew at once to the lady, and settled upon her hair. Then first
|
|
I saw her move. She started, put up her hand, and caught them;
|
|
then rose and, having held them into the flame of the lamp one after
|
|
the other, turned to me. Her face was not so sad now as stern.
|
|
It frightened me much. `Nanny, you have got me into trouble,'
|
|
she said. `You have been letting out my bees, which it is all I can
|
|
do to manage. You have forced me to burn them. It is a great loss,
|
|
and there will be a storm.' As she spoke, the clouds had gathered
|
|
all about us. I could see them come crowding up white about
|
|
the windows. `I am sorry to find,' said the lady, `that you are
|
|
not to be trusted. You must go home again--you won't do for us.'
|
|
Then came a great clap of thunder, and the moon rocked and swayed.
|
|
All grew dark about me, and I fell on the floor and lay half-stunned.
|
|
I could hear everything but could see nothing. `Shall I throw her
|
|
out of the door, my lady?' said the little man. `No,' she answered;
|
|
`she's not quite bad enough for that. I don't think there's much
|
|
harm in her; only she'll never do for us. She would make dreadful
|
|
mischief up here. She's only fit for the mud. It's a great pity.
|
|
I am sorry for her. Just take that ring off her finger. I am sadly
|
|
afraid she has stolen it.' The little man caught hold of my hand,
|
|
and I felt him tugging at the ring. I tried to speak what was
|
|
true about it, but, after a terrible effort, only gave a groan.
|
|
Other things began to come into my head. Somebody else had a hold
|
|
of me. The little man wasn't there. I opened my eyes at last,
|
|
and saw the nurse. I had cried out in my sleep, and she had come
|
|
and waked me. But, Diamond, for all it was only a dream, I cannot
|
|
help being ashamed of myself yet for opening the lady's box of
|
|
bees."
|
|
|
|
"You woudn't do it again--would you--if she were to take you back?"
|
|
said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No. I don't think anything would ever make me do it again.
|
|
But where's the good? I shall never have the chance."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You silly baby! It was only a dream," said Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"I know that, Nanny, dear. But how can you tell you mayn't dream
|
|
it again?"
|
|
|
|
"That's not a bit likely."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You're always saying that," said Nanny. "I don't like it."
|
|
|
|
"Then I won't say it again--if I don't forget." said Diamond.
|
|
"But it was such a beautiful dream!--wasn't it, Nanny? What a pity
|
|
you opened that door and let the bees out! You might have had
|
|
such a long dream, and such nice talks with the moon-lady. Do try
|
|
to go again, Nanny. I do so want to hear more."
|
|
|
|
But now the nurse came and told him it was time to go; and Diamond went,
|
|
saying to himself, "I can't help thinking that North Wind had something
|
|
to do with that dream. It would be tiresome to lie there all day
|
|
and all night too--without dreaming. Perhaps if she hadn't done that,
|
|
the moon might have carried her to the back of the north wind--
|
|
who knows?"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXI
|
|
|
|
THE NORTH WIND DOTH BLOW
|
|
|
|
|
|
IT WAS a great delight to Diamond when at length Nanny was well
|
|
enough to leave the hospital and go home to their house. She was not
|
|
very strong yet, but Diamond's mother was very considerate of her,
|
|
and took care that she should have nothing to do she was not quite
|
|
fit for. If Nanny had been taken straight from the street, it is very
|
|
probable she would not have been so pleasant in a decent household,
|
|
or so easy to teach; but after the refining influences of her illness
|
|
and the kind treatment she had had in the hospital, she moved about
|
|
the house just like some rather sad pleasure haunting the mind.
|
|
As she got better, and the colour came back to her cheeks,
|
|
her step grew lighter and quicker, her smile shone out more readily,
|
|
and it became certain that she would soon be a treasure of help.
|
|
It was great fun to see Diamond teaching her how to hold the baby,
|
|
and wash and dress him, and often they laughed together over
|
|
her awkwardness. But she had not many such lessons before she was
|
|
able to perform those duties quite as well as Diamond himself.
|
|
|
|
Things however did not go well with Joseph from the very arrival of Ruby.
|
|
It almost seemed as if the red beast had brought ill luck with him.
|
|
The fares were fewer, and the pay less. Ruby's services did indeed
|
|
make the week's income at first a little beyond what it used to be,
|
|
but then there were two more to feed. After the first month he fell lame,
|
|
and for the whole of the next Joseph dared not attempt to work him.
|
|
I cannot say that he never grumbled, for his own health was far
|
|
from what it had been; but I can say that he tried to do his best.
|
|
During all that month, they lived on very short commons indeed,
|
|
seldom tasting meat except on Sundays, and poor old Diamond,
|
|
who worked hardest of all, not even then--so that at the end of it
|
|
he was as thin as a clothes-horse, while Ruby was as plump and sleek
|
|
as a bishop's cob.
|
|
|
|
Nor was it much better after Ruby was able to work again, for it
|
|
was a season of great depression in business, and that is very soon
|
|
felt amongst the cabmen. City men look more after their shillings,
|
|
and their wives and daughters have less to spend. It was besides
|
|
a wet autumn, and bread rose greatly in price. When I add to this
|
|
that Diamond's mother was but poorly, for a new baby was coming,
|
|
you will see that these were not very jolly times for our friends
|
|
in the mews.
|
|
|
|
Notwithstanding the depressing influences around him, Joseph was able
|
|
to keep a little hope alive in his heart; and when he came home
|
|
at night, would get Diamond to read to him, and would also make
|
|
Nanny produce her book that he might see how she was getting on.
|
|
For Diamond had taken her education in hand, and as she was a
|
|
clever child, she was very soon able to put letters and words together.
|
|
|
|
Thus the three months passed away, but Mr. Raymond did not return.
|
|
Joseph had been looking anxiously for him, chiefly with the desire
|
|
of getting rid of Ruby--not that he was absolutely of no use to him,
|
|
but that he was a constant weight upon his mind. Indeed, as far
|
|
as provision went, he was rather worse off with Ruby and Nanny than
|
|
he had been before, but on the other hand, Nanny was a great help
|
|
in the house, and it was a comfort to him to think that when the new
|
|
baby did come, Nanny would be with his wife.
|
|
|
|
Of God's gifts a baby is of the greatest; therefore it is no
|
|
wonder that when this one came, she was as heartily welcomed
|
|
by the little household as if she had brought plenty with her.
|
|
Of course she made a great difference in the work to be done--
|
|
far more difference than her size warranted, but Nanny was no end
|
|
of help, and Diamond was as much of a sunbeam as ever, and began
|
|
to sing to the new baby the first moment he got her in his arms.
|
|
But he did not sing the same songs to her that he had sung to
|
|
his brother, for, he said, she was a new baby and must have new songs;
|
|
and besides, she was a sister-baby and not a brother-baby, and of
|
|
course would not like the same kind of songs. Where the difference
|
|
in his songs lay, however, I do not pretend to be able to point out.
|
|
One thing I am sure of, that they not only had no small share
|
|
in the education of the little girl, but helped the whole family
|
|
a great deal more than they were aware.
|
|
|
|
How they managed to get through the long dreary expensive winter,
|
|
I can hardly say. Sometimes things were better, sometimes worse.
|
|
But at last the spring came, and the winter was over and gone,
|
|
and that was much. Still, Mr. Raymond did not return, and although
|
|
the mother would have been able to manage without Nanny now,
|
|
they could not look for a place for her so long as they had Ruby;
|
|
and they were not altogether sorry for this. One week at last was
|
|
worse than they had yet had. They were almost without bread before
|
|
it was over. But the sadder he saw his father and mother looking,
|
|
the more Diamond set himself to sing to the two babies.
|
|
|
|
One thing which had increased their expenses was that they had been
|
|
forced to hire another little room for Nanny. When the second
|
|
baby came, Diamond gave up his room that Nanny might be at hand
|
|
to help his mother, and went to hers, which, although a fine place
|
|
to what she had been accustomed to, was not very nice in his eyes.
|
|
He did not mind the change though, for was not his mother the more
|
|
comfortable for it? And was not Nanny more comfortable too?
|
|
And indeed was not Diamond himself more comfortable that other people
|
|
were more comfortable? And if there was more comfort every way,
|
|
the change was a happy one.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXII
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND AND RUBY
|
|
|
|
|
|
IT WAS Friday night, and Diamond, like the rest of the household,
|
|
had had very little to eat that day. The mother would always pay
|
|
the week's rent before she laid out anything even on food. His father
|
|
had been very gloomy--so gloomy that he had actually been cross
|
|
to his wife. It is a strange thing how pain of seeing the suffering
|
|
of those we love will sometimes make us add to their suffering
|
|
by being cross with them. This comes of not having faith enough
|
|
in God, and shows how necessary this faith is, for when we lose it,
|
|
we lose even the kindness which alone can soothe the suffering.
|
|
Diamond in consequence had gone to bed very quiet and thoughtful--
|
|
a little troubled indeed.
|
|
|
|
It had been a very stormy winter. and even now that the spring
|
|
had come, the north wind often blew. When Diamond went to his bed,
|
|
which was in a tiny room in the roof, he heard it like the
|
|
sea moaning; and when he fell asleep he still heard the moaning.
|
|
All at once he said to himself, "Am I awake, or am I asleep?"
|
|
But he had no time to answer the question, for there was North
|
|
Wind calling him. His heart beat very fast, it was such a long
|
|
time since he had heard that voice. He jumped out of bed,
|
|
and looked everywhere, but could not see her. "Diamond, come here,"
|
|
she said again and again; but where the here was he could not tell.
|
|
To be sure the room was all but quite dark, and she might be close
|
|
beside him.
|
|
|
|
"Dear North Wind," said Diamond, "I want so much to go to you,
|
|
but I can't tell where."
|
|
|
|
"Come here, Diamond," was all her answer.
|
|
|
|
Diamond opened the door, and went out of the room, and down the stair
|
|
and into the yard. His little heart was in a flutter, for he had
|
|
long given up all thought of seeing her again. Neither now was he
|
|
to see her. When he got out, a great puff of wind came against him,
|
|
and in obedience to it he turned his back, and went as it blew.
|
|
It blew him right up to the stable-door, and went on blowing.
|
|
|
|
"She wants me to go into the stable," said Diamond to himself.
|
|
"but the door is locked."
|
|
|
|
He knew where the key was, in a certain hole in the wall--far too
|
|
high for him to get at. He ran to the place, however: just as he
|
|
reached it there came a wild blast, and down fell the key clanging
|
|
on the stones at his feet. He picked it up, and ran back and opened
|
|
the stable-door, and went in. And what do you think he saw?
|
|
|
|
A little light came through the dusty window from a gas-lamp,
|
|
sufficient to show him Diamond and Ruby with their two heads up,
|
|
looking at each other across the partition of their stalls. The light
|
|
showed the white mark on Diamond's forehead, but Ruby's eye shone
|
|
so bright, that he thought more light came out of it than went in.
|
|
This is what he saw.
|
|
|
|
But what do you think he heard?
|
|
|
|
He heard the two horses talking to each other--in a strange language,
|
|
which yet, somehow or other, he could understand, and turn over in
|
|
his mind in English. The first words he heard were from Diamond,
|
|
who apparently had been already quarrelling with Ruby.
|
|
|
|
"Look how fat you are Ruby!" said old Diamond. "You are so plump
|
|
and your skin shines so, you ought to be ashamed of yourself."
|
|
|
|
"There's no harm in being fat," said Ruby in a deprecating tone.
|
|
"No, nor in being sleek. I may as well shine as not."
|
|
|
|
"No harm?" retorted Diamond. "Is it no harm to go eating up all
|
|
poor master's oats, and taking up so much of his time grooming you,
|
|
when you only work six hours--no, not six hours a day, and, as I hear,
|
|
get along no faster than a big dray-horse with two tons behind him?--
|
|
So they tell me."
|
|
|
|
"Your master's not mine," said Ruby. "I must attend to my own
|
|
master's interests, and eat all that is given me, and be sleek
|
|
and fat as I can, and go no faster than I need."
|
|
|
|
"Now really if the rest of the horses weren't all asleep, poor things--
|
|
they work till they're tired--I do believe they would get up and kick
|
|
you out of the stable. You make me ashamed of being a horse.
|
|
You dare to say my master ain't your master! That's your gratitude
|
|
for the way he feeds you and spares you! Pray where would your
|
|
carcass be if it weren't for him?"
|
|
|
|
"He doesn't do it for my sake. If I were his own horse, he would
|
|
work me as hard as he does you."
|
|
|
|
"And I'm proud to be so worked. I wouldn't be as fat as you--
|
|
not for all you're worth. You're a disgrace to the stable. Look at
|
|
the horse next you. He's something like a horse--all skin and bone.
|
|
And his master ain't over kind to him either. He put a stinging lash
|
|
on his whip last week. But that old horse knows he's got the wife
|
|
and children to keep--as well as his drunken master--and he works
|
|
like a horse. I daresay he grudges his master the beer he drinks,
|
|
but I don't believe he grudges anything else."
|
|
|
|
"Well, I don't grudge yours what he gets by me," said Ruby.
|
|
|
|
"Gets!" retorted Diamond. "What he gets isn't worth grudging.
|
|
It comes to next to nothing--what with your fat and shine.
|
|
|
|
"Well, at least you ought to be thankful you're the better for it.
|
|
You get a two hours' rest a day out of it."
|
|
|
|
"I thank my master for that--not you, you lazy fellow! You go
|
|
along like a buttock of beef upon castors--you do."
|
|
|
|
"Ain't you afraid I'll kick, if you go on like that, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"Kick! You couldn't kick if you tried. You might heave your rump
|
|
up half a foot, but for lashing out--oho! If you did, you'd be
|
|
down on your belly before you could get your legs under you again.
|
|
It's my belief, once out, they'd stick out for ever. Talk of kicking!
|
|
Why don't you put one foot before the other now and then when you're
|
|
in the cab? The abuse master gets for your sake is quite shameful.
|
|
No decent horse would bring it on him. Depend upon it, Ruby, no cabman
|
|
likes to be abused any more than his fare. But his fares, at least
|
|
when you are between the shafts, are very much to be excused.
|
|
Indeed they are."
|
|
|
|
"Well, you see, Diamond, I don't want to go lame again."
|
|
|
|
"I don't believe you were so very lame after all--there!"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, but I was."
|
|
|
|
"Then I believe it was all your own fault. I'm not lame.
|
|
I never was lame in all my life. You don't take care of your legs.
|
|
You never lay them down at night. There you are with your huge carcass
|
|
crushing down your poor legs all night long. You don't even care
|
|
for your own legs--so long as you can eat, eat, and sleep, sleep.
|
|
You a horse indeed!"
|
|
|
|
"But I tell you I was lame."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not denying there was a puffy look about your off-pastern.
|
|
But my belief is, it wasn't even grease--it was fat."
|
|
|
|
"I tell you I put my foot on one of those horrid stones they make
|
|
the roads with, and it gave my ankle such a twist."
|
|
|
|
"Ankle indeed! Why should you ape your betters? Horses ain't
|
|
got any ankles: they're only pasterns. And so long as you
|
|
don't lift your feet better, but fall asleep between every step,
|
|
you'll run a good chance of laming all your ankles as you call them,
|
|
one after another. It's not your lively horse that comes to grief
|
|
in that way. I tell you I believe it wasn't much, and if it was,
|
|
it was your own fault. There! I've done. I'm going to sleep.
|
|
I'll try to think as well of you as I can. If you would but step out
|
|
a bit and run off a little of your fat!" Here Diamond began to double
|
|
up his knees; but Ruby spoke again, and, as young Diamond thought,
|
|
in a rather different tone.
|
|
|
|
"I say, Diamond, I can't bear to have an honest old horse like you
|
|
think of me like that. I will tell you the truth: it was my own
|
|
fault that I fell lame."
|
|
|
|
"I told you so," returned the other, tumbling against the partition
|
|
as he rolled over on his side to give his legs every possible
|
|
privilege in their narrow circumstances.
|
|
|
|
"I meant to do it, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
At the words, the old horse arose with a scramble like thunder,
|
|
shot his angry head and glaring eye over into Ruby's stall,
|
|
and said--
|
|
|
|
"Keep out of my way, you unworthy wretch, or I'll bite you.
|
|
You a horse! Why did you do that?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I wanted to grow fat."
|
|
|
|
"You grease-tub! Oh! my teeth and tail! I thought you were a humbug!
|
|
Why did you want to get fat? There's no truth to be got out of you
|
|
but by cross-questioning. You ain't fit to be a horse."
|
|
|
|
"Because once I am fat, my nature is to keep fat for a long time;
|
|
and I didn't know when master might come home and want to see me."
|
|
|
|
"You conceited, good-for-nothing brute! You're only fit for the
|
|
knacker's yard. You wanted to look handsome, did you? Hold your tongue,
|
|
or I'll break my halter and be at you--with your handsome fat!"
|
|
|
|
"Never mind, Diamond. You're a good horse. You can't hurt me."
|
|
|
|
"Can't hurt you! Just let me once try."
|
|
|
|
"No, you can't."
|
|
|
|
"Why then?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I'm an angel."
|
|
|
|
"What's that?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course you don't know."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed I don't."
|
|
|
|
"I know you don't. An ignorant, rude old human horse, like you,
|
|
couldn't know it. But there's young Diamond listening to all
|
|
we're saying; and he knows well enough there are horses in heaven
|
|
for angels to ride upon, as well as other animals, lions and eagles
|
|
and bulls, in more important situations. The horses the angels ride,
|
|
must be angel-horses, else the angels couldn't ride upon them.
|
|
Well, I'm one of them."
|
|
|
|
"You ain't."
|
|
|
|
"Did you ever know a horse tell a lie?"
|
|
|
|
"Never before. But you've confessed to shamming lame."
|
|
|
|
"Nothing of the sort. It was necessary I should grow fat,
|
|
and necessary that good Joseph, your master, should grow lean.
|
|
I could have pretended to be lame, but that no horse, least of all an
|
|
angel-horse would do. So I must be lame, and so I sprained my ankle--
|
|
for the angel-horses have ankles--they don't talk horse-slang up there--
|
|
and it hurt me very much, I assure you, Diamond, though you mayn't
|
|
be good enough to be able to believe it."
|
|
|
|
Old Diamond made no reply. He had lain down again, and a sleepy snort,
|
|
very like a snore, revealed that, if he was not already asleep,
|
|
he was past understanding a word that Ruby was saying. When young
|
|
Diamond found this, he thought he might venture to take up the dropt
|
|
shuttlecock of the conversation.
|
|
|
|
"I'm good enough to believe it, Ruby," he said.
|
|
|
|
But Ruby never turned his head, or took any notice of him.
|
|
I suppose he did not understand more of English than just what
|
|
the coachman and stableman were in the habit of addressing
|
|
him with. Finding, however, that his companion made no reply,
|
|
he shot his head over the partition and looking down at him said--
|
|
|
|
"You just wait till to-morrow, and you'll see whether I'm speaking
|
|
the truth or not.--I declare the old horse is fast asleep!--
|
|
Diamond!--No I won't."
|
|
|
|
Ruby turned away, and began pulling at his hayrack in silence.
|
|
|
|
Diamond gave a shiver, and looking round saw that the door of the
|
|
stable was open. He began to feel as if he had been dreaming,
|
|
and after a glance about the stable to see if North Wind was
|
|
anywhere visible, he thought he had better go back to bed.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIII
|
|
|
|
THE PROSPECT BRIGHTENS
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE next morning, Diamond's mother said to his father, "I'm not
|
|
quite comfortable about that child again."
|
|
|
|
"Which child, Martha?" asked Joseph. "You've got a choice now."
|
|
|
|
"Well, Diamond I mean. I'm afraid he's getting into his queer
|
|
ways again. He's been at his old trick of walking in his sleep.
|
|
I saw him run up the stair in the middle of the night."
|
|
|
|
"Didn't you go after him, wife?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course I did--and found him fast asleep in his bed. It's because
|
|
he's had so little meat for the last six weeks, I'm afraid."
|
|
|
|
"It may be that. I'm very sorry. But if it don't please God
|
|
to send us enough, what am I to do, wife?"
|
|
|
|
"You can't help it, I know, my dear good man," returned Martha.
|
|
"And after all I don't know. I don't see why he shouldn't get on
|
|
as well as the rest of us. There I'm nursing baby all this time,
|
|
and I get along pretty well. I'm sure, to hear the little man singing,
|
|
you wouldn't think there was much amiss with him."
|
|
|
|
For at that moment Diamond was singing like a lark in the clouds.
|
|
He had the new baby in his arms, while his mother was dressing herself.
|
|
Joseph was sitting at his breakfast--a little weak tea, dry bread,
|
|
and very dubious butter--which Nanny had set for him, and which he
|
|
was enjoying because he was hungry. He had groomed both horses,
|
|
and had got old Diamond harnessed ready to put to.
|
|
|
|
"Think of a fat angel, Dulcimer!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
The baby had not been christened yet, but Diamond, in reading
|
|
his Bible, had come upon the word dulcimer, and thought it so pretty
|
|
that ever after he called his sister Dulcimer!
|
|
|
|
"Think of a red, fat angel, Dulcimer!" he repeated; "for Ruby's
|
|
an angel of a horse, Dulcimer. He sprained his ankle and got fat
|
|
on purpose."
|
|
|
|
"What purpose, Diamond?" asked his father.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! that I can't tell. I suppose to look handsome when his
|
|
master comes," answered Diamond.--"What do you think, Dulcimer?
|
|
It must be for some good, for Ruby's an angel."
|
|
|
|
"I wish I were rid of him, anyhow," said his father; "for he weighs
|
|
heavy on my mind."
|
|
|
|
"No wonder, father: he's so fat," said Diamond. "But you needn't
|
|
be afraid, for everybody says he's in better condition than when you
|
|
had him."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but he may be as thin as a tin horse before his owner comes.
|
|
It was too bad to leave him on my hands this way."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps he couldn't help it," suggested Diamond. "I daresay he
|
|
has some good reason for it."
|
|
|
|
"So I should have said," returned his father, "if he had not driven
|
|
such a hard bargain with me at first."
|
|
|
|
"But we don't know what may come of it yet, husband," said his wife.
|
|
"Mr. Raymond may give a little to boot, seeing you've had more of
|
|
the bargain than you wanted or reckoned upon."
|
|
|
|
"I'm afraid not: he's a hard man," said Joseph, as he rose and went
|
|
to get his cab out.
|
|
|
|
Diamond resumed his singing. For some time he carolled snatches
|
|
of everything or anything; but at last it settled down into something
|
|
like what follows. I cannot tell where or how he got it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Where did you come from, baby dear?
|
|
Out of the everywhere into here.
|
|
|
|
Where did you get your eyes so blue?
|
|
Out of the sky as I came through.
|
|
|
|
What makes the light in them sparkle and spin?
|
|
Some of the starry spikes left in.
|
|
|
|
Where did you get that little tear?
|
|
I found it waiting when I got here.
|
|
|
|
What makes your forehead so smooth and high?
|
|
A soft hand stroked it as I went by.
|
|
|
|
What makes your cheek like a warm white rose?
|
|
I saw something better than any one knows.
|
|
|
|
Whence that three-cornered smile of bliss?
|
|
Three angels gave me at once a kiss.
|
|
|
|
Where did you get this pearly ear?
|
|
God spoke, and it came out to hear.
|
|
|
|
Where did you get those arms and hands?
|
|
Love made itself into hooks and bands.
|
|
|
|
Feet, whence did you come, you darling things?
|
|
From the same box as the cherubs' wings.
|
|
|
|
How did they all just come to be you?
|
|
God thought about me, and so I grew.
|
|
|
|
But how did you come to us, you dear?
|
|
God thought about you, and so I am here.
|
|
|
|
"You never made that song, Diamond," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"No, mother. I wish I had. No, I don't. That would be to take it
|
|
from somebody else. But it's mine for all that."
|
|
|
|
"What makes it yours?"
|
|
|
|
"I love it so."
|
|
|
|
"Does loving a thing make it yours?"
|
|
|
|
"I think so, mother--at least more than anything else can. If I didn't
|
|
love baby (which couldn't be, you know) she wouldn't be mine a bit.
|
|
But I do love baby, and baby is my very own Dulcimer."
|
|
|
|
"The baby's mine, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"That makes her the more mine, mother."
|
|
|
|
"How do you make that out?"
|
|
|
|
"Because you're mine, mother."
|
|
|
|
"Is that because you love me?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, just because. Love makes the only myness," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
When his father came home to have his dinner, and change Diamond
|
|
for Ruby, they saw him look very sad, and he told them he had not
|
|
had a fare worth mentioning the whole morning.
|
|
|
|
"We shall all have to go to the workhouse, wife," he said.
|
|
|
|
"It would be better to go to the back of the north wind,"
|
|
said Diamond, dreamily, not intending to say it aloud.
|
|
|
|
"So
|
|
it would," answered his father. "But how are we to get there, Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"We must wait till we're taken," returned Diamond.
|
|
|
|
Before his father could speak again, a knock came to the door,
|
|
and in walked Mr. Raymond with a smile on his face. Joseph got up
|
|
and received him respectfully, but not very cordially. Martha set
|
|
a chair for him, but he would not sit down.
|
|
|
|
"You are not very glad to see me," he said to Joseph. "You don't
|
|
want to part with the old horse."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed, sir, you are mistaken there. What with anxiety about him,
|
|
and bad luck, I've wished I were rid of him a thousand times.
|
|
It was only to be for three months, and here it's eight or nine."
|
|
|
|
"I'm sorry to hear such a statement," said Mr. Raymond. "Hasn't he
|
|
been of service to you?"
|
|
|
|
"Not much, not with his lameness"
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" said Mr. Raymond, hastily--"you've been laming him--have you?
|
|
That accounts for it. I see, I see."
|
|
|
|
"It wasn't my fault, and he's all right now. I don't know
|
|
how it happened, but"
|
|
|
|
"He did it on purpose," said Diamond. "He put his foot on a stone
|
|
just to twist his ankle."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that, Diamond?" said his father, turning to him.
|
|
"I never said so, for I could not think how it came."
|
|
|
|
"I heard it--in the stable," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Let's have a look at him," said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"If you'll step into the yard," said Joseph, "I'll bring him out."
|
|
|
|
They went, and Joseph, having first taken off his harness,
|
|
walked Ruby into the middle of the yard.
|
|
|
|
"Why," said Mr. Raymond, "you've not been using him well."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean by that, sir. I didn't expect to hear
|
|
that from you. He's sound in wind and limb--as sound as a barrel."
|
|
|
|
"And as big, you might add. Why, he's as fat as a pig! You don't
|
|
call that good usage!"
|
|
|
|
Joseph was too angry to make any answer.
|
|
|
|
"You've not worked him enough, I say. That's not making good use
|
|
of him. That's not doing as you'd be done by."
|
|
|
|
"I shouldn't be sorry if I was served the same, sir."
|
|
|
|
"He's too fat, I say."
|
|
|
|
"There was a whole month I couldn't work him at all, and he did
|
|
nothing but eat his head off. He's an awful eater. I've taken
|
|
the best part of six hours a day out of him since, but I'm always
|
|
afraid of his coming to grief again, and so I couldn't make the most
|
|
even of that. I declare to you, sir, when he's between the shafts,
|
|
I sit on the box as miserable as if I'd stolen him. He looks all
|
|
the time as if he was a bottling up of complaints to make of me
|
|
the minute he set eyes on you again. There! look at him now,
|
|
squinting round at me with one eye! I declare to you, on my word,
|
|
I haven't laid the whip on him more than three times."
|
|
|
|
"I'm glad to hear it. He never did want the whip."
|
|
|
|
"I didn't say that, sir. If ever a horse wanted the whip, he do.
|
|
He's brought me to beggary almost with his snail's pace. I'm very
|
|
glad you've come to rid me of him."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that," said Mr. Raymond. "Suppose I were to ask you
|
|
to buy him of me--cheap."
|
|
|
|
"I wouldn't have him in a present, sir. I don't like him.
|
|
And I wouldn't drive a horse that I didn't like--no, not for gold.
|
|
It can't come to good where there's no love between 'em."
|
|
|
|
"Just bring out your own horse, and let me see what sort of a pair
|
|
they'd make."
|
|
|
|
Joseph laughed rather bitterly as he went to fetch Diamond.
|
|
|
|
When the two were placed side by side, Mr. Raymond could
|
|
hardly keep his countenance, but from a mingling of feelings.
|
|
Beside the great, red, round barrel, Ruby, all body and no legs,
|
|
Diamond looked like a clothes-horse with a skin thrown over it.
|
|
There was hardly a spot of him where you could not descry some
|
|
sign of a bone underneath. Gaunt and grim and weary he stood,
|
|
kissing his master, and heeding no one else.
|
|
|
|
"You haven't been using him well," said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"I must say," returned Joseph, throwing an arm round his horse's neck,
|
|
"that the remark had better have been spared, sir. The horse
|
|
is worth three of the other now."
|
|
|
|
"I don't think so. I think they make a very nice pair.
|
|
If the one's too fat, the other's too lean--so that's all right.
|
|
And if you won't buy my Ruby, I must buy your Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir," said Joseph, in a tone implying anything but thanks.
|
|
|
|
"You don't seem to like the proposal," said Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
"I don't," returned Joseph. "I wouldn't part with my old Diamond
|
|
for his skin as full of nuggets as it is of bones."
|
|
|
|
"Who said anything about parting with him?"
|
|
|
|
"You did now, sir."
|
|
|
|
"No; I didn't. I only spoke of buying him to make a pair with Ruby.
|
|
We could pare Ruby and patch Diamond a bit. And for height, they are
|
|
as near a match as I care about. Of course you would be the coachman--
|
|
if only you would consent to be reconciled to Ruby."
|
|
|
|
Joseph stood bewildered, unable to answer.
|
|
|
|
"I've bought a small place in Kent," continued Mr. Raymond, "and I
|
|
must have a pair to my carriage, for the roads are hilly thereabouts.
|
|
I don't want to make a show with a pair of high-steppers. I think
|
|
these will just do. Suppose, for a week or two, you set yourself
|
|
to take Ruby down and bring Diamond up. If we could only lay a pipe
|
|
from Ruby's sides into Diamond's, it would be the work of a moment.
|
|
But I fear that wouldn't answer."
|
|
|
|
A strong inclination to laugh intruded upon Joseph's inclination
|
|
to cry, and made speech still harder than before.
|
|
|
|
"I beg your pardon, sir," he said at length. "I've been so miserable,
|
|
and for so long, that I never thought you was only a chaffing of me
|
|
when you said I hadn't used the horses well. I did grumble at you,
|
|
sir, many's the time in my trouble; but whenever I said anything,
|
|
my little Diamond would look at me with a smile, as much as to say:
|
|
"I know him better than you, father;" and upon my word, I always
|
|
thought the boy must be right."
|
|
|
|
"Will you sell me old Diamond, then?"
|
|
|
|
"I will, sir, on one condition--that if ever you want to part
|
|
with him or me, you give me the option of buying him. I could
|
|
not part with him, sir. As to who calls him his, that's nothing;
|
|
for, as Diamond says, it's only loving a thing that can make it yours--
|
|
and I do love old Diamond, sir, dearly."
|
|
|
|
"Well, there's a cheque for twenty pounds, which I wrote to offer
|
|
you for him, in case I should find you had done the handsome thing
|
|
by Ruby. Will that be enough?"
|
|
|
|
"It's too much, sir. His body ain't worth it--shoes and all.
|
|
It's only his heart, sir--that's worth millions--but his heart'll be
|
|
mine all the same--so it's too much, sir."
|
|
|
|
"I don't think so. It won't be, at least, by the time we've got him
|
|
fed up again. You take it and welcome. Just go on with your cabbing
|
|
for another month, only take it out of Ruby and let Diamond rest;
|
|
and by that time I shall be ready for you to go down into the country."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir. thank you. Diamond set you down for a friend,
|
|
sir, the moment he saw you. I do believe that child of mine
|
|
knows more than other people."
|
|
|
|
"I think so, too," said Mr. Raymond as he walked away.
|
|
|
|
He had meant to test Joseph when he made the bargain about Ruby,
|
|
but had no intention of so greatly prolonging the trial. He had been
|
|
taken ill in Switzerland, and had been quite unable to return sooner.
|
|
He went away now highly gratified at finding that he had stood the test,
|
|
and was a true man.
|
|
|
|
Joseph rushed in to his wife who had been standing at the window
|
|
anxiously waiting the result of the long colloquy. When she
|
|
heard that the horses were to go together in double harness,
|
|
she burst forth into an immoderate fit of laughter. Diamond came
|
|
up with the baby in his arms and made big anxious eyes at her, saying--
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter with you, mother dear? Do cry a little.
|
|
It will do you good. When father takes ever so small a drop of spirits,
|
|
he puts water to it."
|
|
|
|
"You silly darling!" said his mother; "how could I but laugh at
|
|
the notion of that great fat Ruby going side by side with our poor
|
|
old Diamond?"
|
|
|
|
"But why not, mother? With a month's oats, and nothing to do,
|
|
Diamond'll be nearer Ruby's size than you will father's. I think
|
|
it's very good for different sorts to go together. Now Ruby will
|
|
have a chance of teaching Diamond better manners."
|
|
|
|
"How dare you say such a thing, Diamond?" said his father, angrily.
|
|
"To compare the two for manners, there's no comparison possible.
|
|
Our Diamond's a gentleman."
|
|
|
|
"I don't mean to say he isn't, father; for I daresay some
|
|
gentlemen judge their neighbours unjustly. That's all I mean.
|
|
Diamond shouldn't have thought such bad things of Ruby. He didn't
|
|
try to make the best of him."
|
|
|
|
"How do you know that, pray?"
|
|
|
|
"I heard them talking about it one night."
|
|
|
|
"Who?"
|
|
|
|
"Why Diamond and Ruby. Ruby's an angel."
|
|
|
|
Joseph stared and said no more. For all his new gladness,
|
|
he was very gloomy as he re-harnessed the angel, for he thought
|
|
his darling Diamond was going out of his mind.
|
|
|
|
He could not help thinking rather differently, however, when he found
|
|
the change that had come over Ruby. Considering his fat, he exerted
|
|
himself amazingly, and got over the ground with incredible speed.
|
|
So willing, even anxious, was he to go now, that Joseph had to hold
|
|
him quite tight.
|
|
|
|
Then as he laughed at his own fancies, a new fear came upon him lest
|
|
the horse should break his wind, and Mr. Raymond have good cause
|
|
to think he had not been using him well. He might even suppose
|
|
that he had taken advantage of his new instructions, to let out
|
|
upon the horse some of his pent-up dislike; whereas in truth,
|
|
it had so utterly vanished that he felt as if Ruby, too, had been
|
|
his friend all the time.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIV
|
|
|
|
IN THE COUNTRY
|
|
|
|
|
|
BEFORE the end of the month, Ruby had got respectably thin,
|
|
and Diamond respectably stout. They really began to look fit
|
|
for double harness.
|
|
|
|
Joseph and his wife got their affairs in order, and everything ready
|
|
for migrating at the shortest notice; and they felt so peaceful
|
|
and happy that they judged all the trouble they had gone through
|
|
well worth enduring. As for Nanny, she had been so happy ever
|
|
since she left the hospital, that she expected nothing better,
|
|
and saw nothing attractive in the notion of the country.
|
|
At the same time, she had not the least idea of what the word
|
|
country meant, for she had never seen anything about her but streets
|
|
and gas-lamps. Besides, she was more attached to Jim than to Diamond:
|
|
Jim was a reasonable being, Diamond in her eyes at best only an amiable,
|
|
over-grown baby, whom no amount of expostulation would ever bring
|
|
to talk sense, not to say think it. Now that she could manage
|
|
the baby as well as he, she judged herself altogether his superior.
|
|
Towards his father and mother, she was all they could wish.
|
|
|
|
Diamond had taken a great deal of pains and trouble to find Jim,
|
|
and had at last succeeded through the help of the tall policeman,
|
|
who was glad to renew his acquaintance with the strange child.
|
|
Jim had moved his quarters, and had not heard of Nanny's illness till
|
|
some time after she was taken to the hospital, where he was too shy
|
|
to go and inquire about her. But when at length she went to live
|
|
with Diamond's family, Jim was willing enough to go and see her.
|
|
It was after one of his visits, during which they had been talking
|
|
of her new prospects, that Nanny expressed to Diamond her opinion of
|
|
the country.
|
|
|
|
"There ain't nothing in it but the sun and moon, Diamond."
|
|
|
|
"There's trees and flowers," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, they ain't no count," returned Nanny.
|
|
|
|
"Ain't they? They're so beautiful, they make you happy to look
|
|
at them."
|
|
|
|
"That's because you're such a silly."
|
|
|
|
Diamond smiled with a far-away look, as if he were gazing
|
|
through clouds of green leaves and the vision contented him.
|
|
But he was thinking with himself what more he could do for Nanny;
|
|
and that same evening he went to find Mr. Raymond, for he had heard
|
|
that he had returned to town.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! how do you do, Diamond?" said Mr. Raymond; "I am glad to see you."
|
|
|
|
And he was indeed, for he had grown very fond of him. His opinion
|
|
of him was very different from Nanny's.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want now, my child?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"I'm always wanting something, sir," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Well, that's quite right, so long as what you want is right.
|
|
Everybody is always wanting something; only we don't mention it in
|
|
the right place often enough. What is it now?"
|
|
|
|
"There's a friend of Nanny's, a lame boy, called Jim."
|
|
|
|
"I've heard of him," said Mr. Raymond. "Well?"
|
|
|
|
"Nanny doesn't care much about going to the country, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Well, what has that to do with Jim?"
|
|
|
|
"You couldn't find a corner for Jim to work in--could you, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that I couldn't. That is, if you can show good reason
|
|
for it."
|
|
|
|
"He's a good boy, sir."
|
|
|
|
"Well, so much the better for him."
|
|
|
|
"I know he can shine boots, sir."
|
|
|
|
"So much the better for us."
|
|
|
|
"You want your boots shined in the country--don't you, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, to be sure."
|
|
|
|
"It wouldn't be nice to walk over the flowers with dirty boots--
|
|
would it, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed."
|
|
|
|
"They wouldn't like it--would they?"
|
|
|
|
"No, they wouldn't."
|
|
|
|
"Then Nanny would be better pleased to go, sir."
|
|
|
|
"If the flowers didn't like dirty boots to walk over them,
|
|
Nanny wouldn't mind going to the country? Is that it? I don't
|
|
quite see it."
|
|
|
|
"No, sir; I didn't mean that. I meant, if you would take Jim with
|
|
you to clean your boots, and do odd jobs, you know, sir, then Nanny
|
|
would like it better. She's so fond of Jim!"
|
|
|
|
"Now you come to the point, Diamond. I see what you mean, exactly.
|
|
I will turn it over in my mind. Could you bring Jim to see me?"
|
|
|
|
"I'll try, sir. But they don't mind me much. They think I'm silly,"
|
|
added Diamond, with one of his sweetest smiles.
|
|
|
|
What Mr. Raymond thought, I dare hardly attempt to put down here.
|
|
But one part of it was, that the highest wisdom must ever appear folly
|
|
to those who do not possess it.
|
|
|
|
"I think he would come though--after dark, you know," Diamond continued.
|
|
"He does well at shining boots. People's kind to lame boys,
|
|
you know, sir. But after dark, there ain't so much doing."
|
|
|
|
Diamond succeeded in bringing Jim to Mr. Raymond, and the consequence
|
|
was that he resolved to give the boy a chance. He provided
|
|
new clothes for both him and Nanny; and upon a certain day,
|
|
Joseph took his wife and three children, and Nanny and Jim,
|
|
by train to a certain station in the county of Kent, where they
|
|
found a cart waiting to carry them and their luggage to The Mound,
|
|
which was the name of Mr. Raymond's new residence. I will not
|
|
describe the varied feelings of the party as they went, or when
|
|
they arrived. All I will say is, that Diamond, who is my only care,
|
|
was full of quiet delight--a gladness too deep to talk about.
|
|
|
|
Joseph returned to town the same night, and the next morning drove
|
|
Ruby and Diamond down, with the carriage behind them, and Mr. Raymond
|
|
and a lady in the carriage. For Mr. Raymond was an old bachelor
|
|
no longer: he was bringing his wife with him to live at The Mound.
|
|
The moment Nanny saw her, she recognised her as the lady who had lent
|
|
her the ruby-ring. That ring had been given her by Mr. Raymond.
|
|
|
|
The weather was very hot, and the woods very shadowy. There were not
|
|
a great many wild flowers, for it was getting well towards autumn,
|
|
and the most of the wild flowers rise early to be before the leaves,
|
|
because if they did not, they would never get a glimpse of the sun
|
|
for them. So they have their fun over, and are ready to go to bed
|
|
again by the time the trees are dressed. But there was plenty of
|
|
the loveliest grass and daisies about the house, and Diamond's chief
|
|
pleasure seemed to be to lie amongst them, and breathe the pure air.
|
|
But all the time, he was dreaming of the country at the back of the
|
|
north wind, and trying to recall the songs the river used to sing.
|
|
For this was more like being at the back of the north wind than
|
|
anything he had known since he left it. Sometimes he would have
|
|
his little brother, sometimes his little sister, and sometimes
|
|
both of them in the grass with him, and then he felt just like
|
|
a cat with her first kittens, he said, only he couldn't purr--
|
|
all he could do was to sing.
|
|
|
|
These were very different times from those when he used to drive
|
|
the cab, but you must not suppose that Diamond was idle.
|
|
He did not do so much for his mother now, because Nanny occupied
|
|
his former place; but he helped his father still, both in the stable
|
|
and the harness-room, and generally went with him on the box that he
|
|
might learn to drive a pair, and be ready to open the carriage-door.
|
|
Mr. Raymond advised his father to give him plenty of liberty.
|
|
|
|
"A boy like that," he said, "ought not to be pushed."
|
|
|
|
Joseph assented heartily, smiling to himself at the idea of
|
|
pushing Diamond. After doing everything that fell to his share,
|
|
the boy had a wealth of time at his disposal. And a happy,
|
|
sometimes a merry time it was. Only for two months or so,
|
|
he neither saw nor heard anything of North Wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXV
|
|
|
|
I MAKE DIAMOND'S ACQUAINTANCE
|
|
|
|
|
|
MR. RAYMOND'S house was called The Mound, because it stood upon
|
|
a little steep knoll, so smooth and symmetrical that it showed
|
|
itself at once to be artificial. It had, beyond doubt, been built
|
|
for Queen Elizabeth as a hunting tower--a place, namely, from the
|
|
top of which you could see the country for miles on all sides,
|
|
and so be able to follow with your eyes the flying deer and the
|
|
pursuing hounds and horsemen. The mound had been cast up to give
|
|
a good basement-advantage over the neighbouring heights and woods.
|
|
There was a great quarry-hole not far off, brim-full of water,
|
|
from which, as the current legend stated, the materials forming
|
|
the heart of the mound--a kind of stone unfit for building--
|
|
had been dug. The house itself was of brick, and they said the
|
|
foundations were first laid in the natural level, and then the
|
|
stones and earth of the mound were heaped about and between them,
|
|
so that its great height should be well buttressed.
|
|
|
|
Joseph and his wife lived in a little cottage a short way from the house.
|
|
It was a real cottage, with a roof of thick thatch, which, in June
|
|
and July, the wind sprinkled with the red and white petals it shook
|
|
from the loose topmost sprays of the rose-trees climbing the walls.
|
|
At first Diamond had a nest under this thatch--a pretty little room
|
|
with white muslin curtains, but afterwards Mr. and Mrs. Raymond
|
|
wanted to have him for a page in the house, and his father and mother
|
|
were quite pleased to have him employed without his leaving them.
|
|
So he was dressed in a suit of blue, from which his pale face
|
|
and fair hair came out like the loveliest blossom, and took up his
|
|
abode in the house.
|
|
|
|
"Would you be afraid to sleep alone, Diamond?" asked his mistress.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean, ma'am," said Diamond. "I never was
|
|
afraid of anything that I can recollect--not much, at least."
|
|
|
|
"There's a little room at the top of the house--all alone,"
|
|
she returned; "perhaps you would not mind sleeping there?"
|
|
|
|
"I can sleep anywhere, and I like best to be high up. Should I
|
|
be able to see out?"
|
|
|
|
"I will show you the place," she answered; and taking him by the hand,
|
|
she led him up and up the oval-winding stair in one of the two towers.
|
|
|
|
Near the top they entered a tiny little room, with two windows
|
|
from which you could see over the whole country. Diamond clapped
|
|
his hands with delight.
|
|
|
|
"You would like this room, then, Diamond?" said his mistress.
|
|
|
|
"It's the grandest room in the house," he answered. "I shall
|
|
be near the stars, and yet not far from the tops of the trees.
|
|
That's just what I like."
|
|
|
|
I daresay he thought, also, that it would be a nice place for North
|
|
Wind to call at in passing; but he said nothing of that sort.
|
|
Below him spread a lake of green leaves, with glimpses of grass
|
|
here and there at the bottom of it. As he looked down, he saw
|
|
a squirrel appear suddenly, and as suddenly vanish amongst the
|
|
topmost branches.
|
|
|
|
"Aha! little squirrel," he cried, "my nest is built higher than yours."
|
|
|
|
"You can be up here with your books as much as you like,"
|
|
said his mistress. "I will have a little bell hung at the door,
|
|
which I can ring when I want you. Half-way down the stair is
|
|
the drawing-room."
|
|
|
|
So Diamond was installed as page, and his new room got ready for him.
|
|
|
|
It was very soon after this that I came to know Diamond.
|
|
I was then a tutor in a family whose estate adjoined the little
|
|
property belonging to The Mound. I had made the acquaintance
|
|
of Mr. Raymond in London some time before, and was walking up
|
|
the drive towards the house to call upon him one fine warm evening,
|
|
when I saw Diamond for the first time. He was sitting at the foot
|
|
of a great beech-tree, a few yards from the road, with a book
|
|
on his knees. He did not see me. I walked up behind the tree,
|
|
and peeping over his shoulder, saw that he was reading a fairy-book.
|
|
|
|
"What are you reading?" I said, and spoke suddenly, with the hope
|
|
of seeing a startled little face look round at me. Diamond turned
|
|
his head as quietly as if he were only obeying his mother's voice,
|
|
and the calmness of his face rebuked my unkind desire and made me
|
|
ashamed of it.
|
|
|
|
"I am reading the story of the Little Lady and the Goblin Prince,"
|
|
said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry I don't know the story," I returned. "Who is it by?"
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Raymond made it."
|
|
|
|
"Is he your uncle?" I asked at a guess.
|
|
|
|
"No. He's my master."
|
|
|
|
"What do you do for him?" I asked respectfully.
|
|
|
|
"Anything he wishes me to do," he answered. "I am busy for him now.
|
|
He gave me this story to read. He wants my opinion upon it."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you find it rather hard to make up your mind?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear no! Any story always tells me itself what I'm to think
|
|
about it. Mr. Raymond doesn't want me to say whether it is a
|
|
clever story or not, but whether I like it, and why I like it.
|
|
I never can tell what they call clever from what they call silly,
|
|
but I always know whether I like a story or not."
|
|
|
|
"And can you always tell why you like it or not?"
|
|
|
|
"No. Very often I can't at all. Sometimes I can. I always know,
|
|
but I can't always tell why. Mr. Raymond writes the stories,
|
|
and then tries them on me. Mother does the same when she makes jam.
|
|
She's made such a lot of jam since we came here! And she always makes
|
|
me taste it to see if it'll do. Mother knows by the face I make
|
|
whether it will or not."
|
|
|
|
At this moment I caught sight of two more children approaching.
|
|
One was a handsome girl, the other a pale-faced, awkward-looking boy,
|
|
who limped much on one leg. I withdrew a little, to see what
|
|
would follow, for they seemed in some consternation. After a few
|
|
hurried words, they went off together, and I pursued my way to
|
|
the house, where I was as kindly received by Mr. and Mrs. Raymond
|
|
as I could have desired. From them I learned something of Diamond,
|
|
and was in consequence the more glad to find him, when I returned,
|
|
seated in the same place as before.
|
|
|
|
"What did the boy and girl want with you, Diamond?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"They had seen a creature that frightened them."
|
|
|
|
"And they came to tell you about it?"
|
|
|
|
"They couldn't get water out of the well for it. So they wanted
|
|
me to go with them."
|
|
|
|
"They're both bigger than you."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but they were frightened at it."
|
|
|
|
"And weren't you frightened at it?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I'm silly. I'm never frightened at things."
|
|
|
|
I could not help thinking of the old meaning of the word silly.
|
|
|
|
"And what was it?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I think it was a kind of an angel--a very little one. It had a long
|
|
body and great wings, which it drove about it so fast that they grew
|
|
a thin cloud all round it. It flew backwards and forwards over
|
|
the well, or hung right in the middle, making a mist of its wings,
|
|
as if its business was to take care of the water."
|
|
|
|
"And what did you do to drive it away?"
|
|
|
|
"I didn't drive it away. I knew, whatever the creature was,
|
|
the well was to get water out of. So I took the jug, dipped it in,
|
|
and drew the water."
|
|
|
|
"And what did the creature do?"
|
|
|
|
"Flew about."
|
|
|
|
"And it didn't hurt you?"
|
|
|
|
"No. Why should it? I wasn't doing anything wrong."
|
|
|
|
"What did your companions say then?"
|
|
|
|
"They said--`Thank you, Diamond. What a dear silly you are!'"
|
|
|
|
"And weren't you angry with them?"
|
|
|
|
"No! Why should I? I should like if they would play with me a little;
|
|
but they always like better to go away together when their work
|
|
is over. They never heed me. I don't mind it much, though.
|
|
The other creatures are friendly. They don't run away from me.
|
|
Only they're all so busy with their own work, they don't mind
|
|
me much."
|
|
|
|
"Do you feel lonely, then?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no! When nobody minds me, I get into my nest, and look up.
|
|
And then the sky does mind me, and thinks about me."
|
|
|
|
"Where is your nest?"
|
|
|
|
He rose, saying, "I will show you," and led me to the other side
|
|
of the tree.
|
|
|
|
There hung a little rope-ladder from one of the lower boughs.
|
|
The boy climbed up the ladder and got upon the bough. Then he climbed
|
|
farther into the leafy branches, and went out of sight.
|
|
|
|
After a little while, I heard his voice coming down out of the tree.
|
|
|
|
"I am in my nest now," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
"I can't see you," I returned.
|
|
|
|
"I can't see you either, but I can see the first star peeping
|
|
out of the sky. I should like to get up into the sky. Don't you
|
|
think I shall, some day?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I do. Tell me what more you see up there."
|
|
|
|
"I don't see anything more, except a few leaves, and the big sky
|
|
over me. It goes swinging about. The earth is all behind my back.
|
|
There comes another star! The wind is like kisses from a big lady.
|
|
When I get up here I feel as if I were in North Wind's arms."
|
|
|
|
This was the first I heard of North Wind.
|
|
|
|
The whole ways and look of the child, so full of quiet wisdom,
|
|
yet so ready to accept the judgment of others in his own dispraise,
|
|
took hold of my heart, and I felt myself wonderfully drawn towards him.
|
|
It seemed to me, somehow, as if little Diamond possessed the secret
|
|
of life, and was himself what he was so ready to think the lowest
|
|
living thing--an angel of God with something special to say or do.
|
|
A gush of reverence came over me, and with a single goodnight,
|
|
I turned and left him in his nest.
|
|
|
|
I saw him often after this, and gained so much of his confidence
|
|
that he told me all I have told you. I cannot pretend to account
|
|
for it. I leave that for each philosophical reader to do after
|
|
his own fashion. The easiest way is that of Nanny and Jim,
|
|
who said often to each other that Diamond had a tile loose.
|
|
But Mr. Raymond was much of my opinion concerning the boy;
|
|
while Mrs. Raymond confessed that she often rang her bell just
|
|
to have once more the pleasure of seeing the lovely stillness
|
|
of the boy's face, with those blue eyes which seemed rather made
|
|
for other people to look into than for himself to look out of.
|
|
|
|
It was plainer to others than to himself that he felt the desertion
|
|
of Nanny and Jim. They appeared to regard him as a mere toy,
|
|
except when they found he could minister to the scruple of using him--
|
|
generally with success. They were, however, well-behaved to a
|
|
wonderful degree; while I have little doubt that much of their
|
|
good behaviour was owing to the unconscious influence of the boy
|
|
they called God's baby.
|
|
|
|
One very strange thing is that I could never find out where
|
|
he got some of his many songs. At times they would be but
|
|
bubbles blown out of a nursery rhyme, as was the following,
|
|
which I heard him sing one evening to his little Dulcimer.
|
|
There were about a score of sheep feeding in a paddock near him,
|
|
their white wool dyed a pale rose in the light of the setting sun.
|
|
Those in the long shadows from the trees were dead white;
|
|
those in the sunlight were half glorified with pale rose.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Little Bo Peep, she lost her sheep,
|
|
And didn't know where to find them;
|
|
They were over the height and out of sight,
|
|
Trailing their tails behind them.
|
|
|
|
Little Bo Peep woke out of her sleep,
|
|
Jump'd up and set out to find them:
|
|
"The silly things, they've got no wings,
|
|
And they've left their trails behind them:
|
|
|
|
"They've taken their tails, but they've left their trails,
|
|
And so I shall follow and find them;"
|
|
For wherever a tail had dragged a trail,
|
|
The long grass grew behind them.
|
|
|
|
And day's eyes and butter-cups, cow's lips and crow's feet
|
|
Were glittering in the sun.
|
|
She threw down her book, and caught up her crook,
|
|
And after her sheep did run.
|
|
|
|
She ran, and she ran, and ever as she ran,
|
|
The grass grew higher and higher;
|
|
Till over the hill the sun began
|
|
To set in a flame of fire.
|
|
|
|
She ran on still -- up the grassy hill,
|
|
And the grass grew higher and higher;
|
|
When she reached its crown, the sun was down,
|
|
And had left a trail of fire.
|
|
|
|
The sheep and their tails were gone, all gone --
|
|
And no more trail behind them!
|
|
Yes, yes! they were there -- long-tailed and fair,
|
|
But, alas! she could not find them.
|
|
|
|
Purple and gold, and rosy and blue,
|
|
With their tails all white behind them,
|
|
Her sheep they did run in the trail of the sun;
|
|
She saw them, but could not find them.
|
|
|
|
After the sun, like clouds they did run,
|
|
But she knew they were her sheep:
|
|
She sat down to cry, and look up at the sky,
|
|
But she cried herself asleep.
|
|
|
|
And as she slept the dew fell fast,
|
|
And the wind blew from the sky;
|
|
And strange things took place that shun the day's face,
|
|
Because they are sweet and shy.
|
|
|
|
Nibble, nibble, crop! she heard as she woke:
|
|
A hundred little lambs
|
|
Did pluck and eat the grass so sweet
|
|
That grew in the trails of their dams.
|
|
|
|
Little Bo Peep caught up her crook,
|
|
And wiped the tears that did blind her.
|
|
And nibble, nibble crop! without a stop!
|
|
The lambs came eating behind her.
|
|
|
|
Home, home she came, both tired and lame,
|
|
With three times as many sheep.
|
|
In a month or more, they'll be as big as before,
|
|
And then she'll laugh in her sleep.
|
|
|
|
But what would you say, if one fine day,
|
|
When they've got their bushiest tails,
|
|
Their grown up game should be just the same,
|
|
And she have to follow their trails?
|
|
|
|
Never weep, Bo Peep, though you lose your sheep,
|
|
And do not know where to find them;
|
|
'Tis after the sun the mothers have run,
|
|
And there are their lambs behind them.
|
|
|
|
I confess again to having touched up a little, but it loses far
|
|
more in Diamond's sweet voice singing it than it gains by a rhyme
|
|
here and there.
|
|
|
|
Some of them were out of books Mr. Raymond had given him.
|
|
These he always knew, but about the others he could seldom tell.
|
|
Sometimes he would say, "I made that one." but generally he would say,
|
|
"I don't know; I found it somewhere;" or "I got it at the back of
|
|
the north wind."
|
|
|
|
One evening I found him sitting on the grassy slope under the house,
|
|
with his Dulcimer in his arms and his little brother rolling
|
|
on the grass beside them. He was chanting in his usual way,
|
|
more like the sound of a brook than anything else I can think of.
|
|
When I went up to them he ceased his chant.
|
|
|
|
"Do go on, Diamond. Don't mind me," I said.
|
|
|
|
He began again at once. While he sang, Nanny and Jim sat a little
|
|
way off, one hemming a pocket-handkerchief, and the other reading
|
|
a story to her, but they never heeded Diamond. This is as near
|
|
what he sang as I can recollect, or reproduce rather.
|
|
|
|
What would you see if I took you up
|
|
To my little nest in the air?
|
|
You would see the sky like a clear blue cup
|
|
Turned upside downwards there.
|
|
|
|
What would you do if I took you there
|
|
To my little nest in the tree?
|
|
My child with cries would trouble the air,
|
|
To get what she could but see.
|
|
|
|
What would you get in the top of the tree
|
|
For all your crying and grief?
|
|
Not a star would you clutch of all you see --
|
|
You could only gather a leaf.
|
|
|
|
But when you had lost your greedy grief,
|
|
Content to see from afar,
|
|
You would find in your hand a withering leaf,
|
|
In your heart a shining star.
|
|
|
|
As Diamond went on singing, it grew very dark, and just as he
|
|
ceased there came a great flash of lightning, that blinded us all
|
|
for a moment. Dulcimer crowed with pleasure; but when the roar
|
|
of thunder came after it, the little brother gave a loud cry
|
|
of terror. Nanny and Jim came running up to us, pale with fear.
|
|
Diamond's face, too, was paler than usual, but with delight.
|
|
Some of the glory seemed to have clung to it, and remained shining.
|
|
|
|
"You're not frightened--are you, Diamond?" I said.
|
|
|
|
"No. Why should I be?" he answered with his usual question,
|
|
looking up in my face with calm shining eyes.
|
|
|
|
"He ain't got sense to be frightened," said Nanny, going up to him
|
|
and giving him a pitying hug.
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps there's more sense in not being frightened, Nanny," I returned.
|
|
"Do you think the lightning can do as it likes?"
|
|
|
|
"It might kill you," said Jim.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no, it mightn't!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
As he spoke there came another great flash, and a tearing crack.
|
|
|
|
"There's a tree struck!" I said; and when we looked round,
|
|
after the blinding of the flash had left our eyes, we saw a huge
|
|
bough of the beech-tree in which was Diamond's nest hanging
|
|
to the ground like the broken wing of a bird.
|
|
|
|
"There!" cried Nanny; "I told you so. If you had been up there
|
|
you see what would have happened, you little silly!"
|
|
|
|
"No, I don't," said Diamond, and began to sing to Dulcimer.
|
|
All I could hear of the song, for the other children were going on
|
|
with their chatter, was--
|
|
|
|
The clock struck one,
|
|
And the mouse came down.
|
|
Dickery, dickery, dock!
|
|
|
|
Then there came a blast of wind, and the rain followed in
|
|
straight-pouring lines, as if out of a watering-pot. Diamond
|
|
jumped up with his little Dulcimer in his arms, and Nanny
|
|
caught up the little boy, and they ran for the cottage.
|
|
Jim vanished with a double shuffle, and I went into the house.
|
|
|
|
When I came out again to return home, the clouds were gone,
|
|
and the evening sky glimmered through the trees, blue, and pale-green
|
|
towards the west, I turned my steps a little aside to look at the
|
|
stricken beech. I saw the bough torn from the stem, and that was
|
|
all the twilight would allow me to see. While I stood gazing,
|
|
down from the sky came a sound of singing, but the voice was
|
|
neither of lark nor of nightingale: it was sweeter than either:
|
|
it was the voice of Diamond, up in his airy nest:--
|
|
|
|
The lightning and thunder,
|
|
They go and they come;
|
|
But the stars and the stillness
|
|
Are always at home.
|
|
|
|
And then the voice ceased.
|
|
|
|
"Good-night, Diamond," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Good-night, sir," answered Diamond.
|
|
|
|
As I walked away pondering, I saw the great black top of the beech
|
|
swaying about against the sky in an upper wind, and heard the murmur
|
|
as of many dim half-articulate voices filling the solitude around
|
|
Diamond's nest.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVI
|
|
|
|
DIAMOND QUESTIONS NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
MY READERS will not wonder that, after this, I did my very best
|
|
to gain the friendship of Diamond. Nor did I find this at
|
|
all difficult, the child was so ready to trust. Upon one subject
|
|
alone was he reticent--the story of his relations with North Wind.
|
|
I fancy he could not quite make up his mind what to think of them.
|
|
At all events it was some little time before he trusted me with this,
|
|
only then he told me everything. If I could not regard it
|
|
all in exactly the same light as he did, I was, while guiltless
|
|
of the least pretence, fully sympathetic, and he was satisfied
|
|
without demanding of me any theory of difficult points involved.
|
|
I let him see plainly enough, that whatever might be the explanation
|
|
of the marvellous experience, I would have given much for a similar
|
|
one myself.
|
|
|
|
On an evening soon after the thunderstorm, in a late twilight,
|
|
with a half-moon high in the heavens, I came upon Diamond in the act
|
|
of climbing by his little ladder into the beech-tree.
|
|
|
|
"What are you always going up there for, Diamond?" I heard Nanny ask,
|
|
rather rudely, I thought.
|
|
|
|
"Sometimes for one thing, sometimes for another, Nanny,"
|
|
answered Diamond, looking skywards as he climbed.
|
|
|
|
"You'll break your neck some day," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I'm going up to look at the moon to-night," he added, without heeding
|
|
her remark.
|
|
|
|
"You'll see the moon just as well down here," she returned.
|
|
|
|
"I don't think so."
|
|
|
|
"You'll be no nearer to her up there."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes! I shall. I must be nearer her, you know. I wish I
|
|
could dream as pretty dreams about her as you can, Nanny."
|
|
|
|
"You silly! you never have done about that dream. I never dreamed
|
|
but that one, and it was nonsense enough, I'm sure."
|
|
|
|
"It wasn't nonsense. It was a beautiful dream--and a funny one too,
|
|
both in one."
|
|
|
|
"But what's the good of talking about it that way, when you know
|
|
it was only a dream? Dreams ain't true."
|
|
|
|
"That one was true, Nanny. You know it was. Didn't you come to
|
|
grief for doing what you were told not to do? And isn't that true?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't get any sense into him," exclaimed Nanny, with an expression
|
|
of mild despair. "Do you really believe, Diamond, that there's
|
|
a house in the moon, with a beautiful lady and a crooked old man
|
|
and dusters in it?"
|
|
|
|
"If there isn't, there's something better," he answered, and vanished
|
|
in the leaves over our heads.
|
|
|
|
I went into the house, where I visited often in the evenings.
|
|
When I came out, there was a little wind blowing, very pleasant
|
|
after the heat of the day, for although it was late summer now,
|
|
it was still hot. The tree-tops were swinging about in it.
|
|
I took my way past the beech, and called up to see if Diamond were
|
|
still in his nest in its rocking head.
|
|
|
|
"Are you there, Diamond?" I said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir," came his clear voice in reply.
|
|
|
|
"Isn't it growing too dark for you to get down safely?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no, sir--if I take time to it. I know my way so well,
|
|
and never let go with one hand till I've a good hold with the other."
|
|
|
|
"Do be careful," I insisted--foolishly, seeing the boy was as careful
|
|
as he could be already.
|
|
|
|
"I'm coming," he returned. "I've got all the moon I want to-night."
|
|
|
|
|
|
I heard a rustling and a rustling drawing nearer and nearer.
|
|
Three or four minutes elapsed, and he appeared at length creeping
|
|
down his little ladder. I took him in my arms, and set him on
|
|
the ground.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, sir," he said. "That's the north wind blowing,
|
|
isn't it, sir?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't tell," I answered. "It feels cool and kind, and I think
|
|
it may be. But I couldn't be sure except it were stronger, for a
|
|
gentle wind might turn any way amongst the trunks of the trees."
|
|
|
|
"I shall know when I get up to my own room," said Diamond.
|
|
"I think I hear my mistress's bell. Good-night, sir."
|
|
|
|
He ran to the house, and I went home.
|
|
|
|
His mistress had rung for him only to send him to bed, for she was
|
|
very careful over him and I daresay thought he was not looking well.
|
|
When he reached his own room, he opened both his windows,
|
|
one of which looked to the north and the other to the east, to find
|
|
how the wind blew. It blew right in at the northern window.
|
|
Diamond was very glad, for he thought perhaps North Wind herself
|
|
would come now: a real north wind had never blown all the time
|
|
since he left London. But, as she always came of herself,
|
|
and never when he was looking for her, and indeed almost never when
|
|
he was thinking of her, he shut the east window, and went to bed.
|
|
Perhaps some of my readers may wonder that he could go to sleep with
|
|
such an expectation; and, indeed, if I had not known him, I should
|
|
have wondered at it myself; but it was one of his peculiarities,
|
|
and seemed nothing strange in him. He was so full of quietness that
|
|
he could go to sleep almost any time, if he only composed himself
|
|
and let the sleep come. This time he went fast asleep as usual.
|
|
|
|
But he woke in the dim blue night. The moon had vanished.
|
|
He thought he heard a knocking at his door. "Somebody wants me,"
|
|
he said to himself, and jumping out of bed, ran to open it.
|
|
|
|
But there was no one there. He closed it again, and, the noise
|
|
still continuing, found that another door in the room was rattling.
|
|
It belonged to a closet, he thought, but he had never been able
|
|
to open it. The wind blowing in at the window must be shaking it.
|
|
He would go and see if it was so.
|
|
|
|
The door now opened quite easily, but to his surprise, instead of
|
|
a closet he found a long narrow room. The moon, which was sinking
|
|
in the west, shone in at an open window at the further end.
|
|
The room was low with a coved ceiling, and occupied the whole top
|
|
of the house, immediately under the roof. It was quite empty.
|
|
The yellow light of the half-moon streamed over the dark floor.
|
|
He was so delighted at the discovery of the strange, desolate,
|
|
moonlit place close to his own snug little room, that he began
|
|
to dance and skip about the floor. The wind came in through
|
|
the door he had left open, and blew about him as he danced,
|
|
and he kept turning towards it that it might blow in his face.
|
|
He kept picturing to himself the many places, lovely and desolate,
|
|
the hill-sides and farm-yards and tree-tops and meadows,
|
|
over which it had blown on its way to The Mound. And as he danced,
|
|
he grew more and more delighted with the motion and the wind;
|
|
his feet grew stronger, and his body lighter, until at length it
|
|
seemed as if he were borne up on the air, and could almost fly.
|
|
So strong did his feeling become, that at last he began to doubt
|
|
whether he was not in one of those precious dreams he had
|
|
so often had, in which he floated about on the air at will.
|
|
But something made him look up, and to his unspeakable delight,
|
|
he found his uplifted hands lying in those of North Wind,
|
|
who was dancing with him, round and round the long bare room,
|
|
her hair now falling to the floor, now filling the arched ceiling,
|
|
her eyes shining on him like thinking stars, and the sweetest of
|
|
grand smiles playing breezily about her beautiful mouth. She was,
|
|
as so often before, of the height of a rather tall lady. She did not
|
|
stoop in order to dance with him, but held his hands high in hers.
|
|
When he saw her, he gave one spring, and his arms were about her neck,
|
|
and her arms holding him to her bosom. The same moment she swept
|
|
with him through the open window in at which the moon was shining,
|
|
made a circuit like a bird about to alight, and settled with him
|
|
in his nest on the top of the great beech-tree. There she placed
|
|
him on her lap and began to hush him as if he were her own baby,
|
|
and Diamond was so entirely happy that he did not care to speak
|
|
a word. At length, however, he found that he was going to sleep,
|
|
and that would be to lose so much, that, pleasant as it was, he could
|
|
not consent.
|
|
|
|
"Please, dear North Wind," he said, "I am so happy that I'm afraid
|
|
it's a dream. How am I to know that it's not a dream?"
|
|
|
|
"What does it matter?" returned North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"I should, cry" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"But why should you cry? The dream, if it is a dream, is a pleasant one--
|
|
is it not?"
|
|
|
|
"That's just why I want it to be true."
|
|
|
|
"Have you forgotten what you said to Nanny about her dream?"
|
|
|
|
"It's not for the dream itself--I mean, it's not for the pleasure
|
|
of it," answered Diamond, "for I have that, whether it be a dream
|
|
or not; it's for you, North Wind; I can't bear to find it a dream,
|
|
because then I should lose you. You would be nobody then, and I
|
|
could not bear that. You ain't a dream, are you, dear North Wind?
|
|
Do say No, else I shall cry, and come awake, and you'll be gone for ever.
|
|
I daren't dream about you once again if you ain't anybody."
|
|
|
|
"I'm either not a dream, or there's something better that's not
|
|
a dream, Diamond," said North Wind, in a rather sorrowful tone,
|
|
he thought.
|
|
|
|
"But it's not something better--it's you I want, North Wind,"
|
|
he persisted, already beginning to cry a little.
|
|
|
|
She made no answer, but rose with him in her arms and sailed away
|
|
over the tree-tops till they came to a meadow, where a flock
|
|
of sheep was feeding.
|
|
|
|
"Do you remember what the song you were singing a week ago says
|
|
about Bo-Peep--how she lost her sheep, but got twice as many lambs?"
|
|
asked North Wind, sitting down on the grass, and placing him in her
|
|
lap as before.
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes, I do, well enough," answered Diamond; "but I never just
|
|
quite liked that rhyme."
|
|
|
|
"Why not, child?"
|
|
|
|
"Because it seems to say one's as good as another, or two new ones
|
|
are better than one that's lost. I've been thinking about it
|
|
a great deal, and it seems to me that although any one sixpence
|
|
is as good as any other sixpence, not twenty lambs would do instead
|
|
of one sheep whose face you knew. Somehow, when once you've
|
|
looked into anybody's eyes, right deep down into them, I mean,
|
|
nobody will do for that one any more. Nobody, ever so beautiful
|
|
or so good, will make up for that one going out of sight.
|
|
So you see, North Wind, I can't help being frightened to think
|
|
that perhaps I am only dreaming, and you are nowhere at all.
|
|
Do tell me that you are my own, real, beautiful North Wind."
|
|
|
|
Again she rose, and shot herself into the air, as if uneasy
|
|
because she could not answer him; and Diamond lay quiet in her arms,
|
|
waiting for what she would say. He tried to see up into her face,
|
|
for he was dreadfully afraid she was not answering him because she
|
|
could not say that she was not a dream; but she had let her hair
|
|
fall all over her face so that he could not see it. This frightened
|
|
him still more.
|
|
|
|
"Do speak, North Wind," he said at last.
|
|
|
|
"I never speak when I have nothing to say," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Then I do think you must be a real North Wind, and no dream,"
|
|
said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"But I'm looking for something to say all the time."
|
|
|
|
"But I don't want you to say what's hard to find. If you were
|
|
to say one word to comfort me that wasn't true, then I should know
|
|
you must be a dream, for a great beautiful lady like you could
|
|
never tell a lie."
|
|
|
|
"But she mightn't know how to say what she had to say, so that
|
|
a little boy like you would understand it," said North Wind.
|
|
"Here, let us get down again, and I will try to tell you what I think.
|
|
You musn't suppose I am able to answer all your questions, though.
|
|
There are a great many things I don't understand more than you do."
|
|
|
|
She descended on a grassy hillock, in the midst of a wild furzy common.
|
|
There was a rabbit-warren underneath, and some of the rabbits came
|
|
out of their holes, in the moonlight, looking very sober and wise,
|
|
just like patriarchs standing in their tent-doors, and looking
|
|
about them before going to bed. When they saw North Wind,
|
|
instead of turning round and vanishing again with a thump of
|
|
their heels, they cantered slowly up to her and snuffled all about
|
|
her with their long upper lips, which moved every way at once.
|
|
That was their way of kissing her; and, as she talked to Diamond,
|
|
she would every now and then stroke down their furry backs,
|
|
or lift and play with their long ears. They would, Diamond thought,
|
|
have leaped upon her lap, but that he was there already.
|
|
|
|
"I think," said she, after they had been sitting silent for a while,
|
|
"that if I were only a dream, you would not have been able to love
|
|
me so. You love me when you are not with me, don't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Indeed I do," answered Diamond, stroking her hand. "I see! I see!
|
|
How could I be able to love you as I do if you weren't there at all,
|
|
you know? Besides, I couldn't be able to dream anything half
|
|
so beautiful all out of my own head; or if I did, I couldn't love
|
|
a fancy of my own like that, could I?"
|
|
|
|
"I think not. You might have loved me in a dream, dreamily, and forgotten
|
|
me when you woke, I daresay, but not loved me like a real being
|
|
as you love me. Even then, I don't think you could dream anything
|
|
that hadn't something real like it somewhere. But you've seen
|
|
me in many shapes, Diamond: you remember I was a wolf once--don't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes--a good wolf that frightened a naughty drunken nurse."
|
|
|
|
"Well, suppose I were to turn ugly, would you rather I weren't
|
|
a dream then?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; for I should know that you were beautiful inside all the same.
|
|
You would love me, and I should love you all the same. I shouldn't
|
|
like you to look ugly, you know. But I shouldn't believe it a bit."
|
|
|
|
"Not if you saw it?"
|
|
|
|
"No, not if I saw it ever so plain."
|
|
|
|
"There's my Diamond! I will tell you all I know about it then.
|
|
I don't think I am just what you fancy me to be. I have to shape
|
|
myself various ways to various people. But the heart of me is true.
|
|
People call me by dreadful names, and think they know all about me.
|
|
But they don't. Sometimes they call me Bad Fortune, sometimes Evil Chance,
|
|
sometimes Ruin; and they have another name for me which they think
|
|
the most dreadful of all."
|
|
|
|
"What is that?" asked Diamond, smiling up in her face.
|
|
|
|
"I won't tell you that name. Do you remember having to go through
|
|
me to get into the country at my back?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes, I do. How cold you were, North Wind! and so white,
|
|
all but your lovely eyes! My heart grew like a lump of ice,
|
|
and then I forgot for a while."
|
|
|
|
"You were very near knowing what they call me then. Would you
|
|
be afraid of me if you had to go through me again?"
|
|
|
|
"No. Why should I? Indeed I should be glad enough, if it was only
|
|
to get another peep of the country at your back."
|
|
|
|
"You've never seen it yet."
|
|
|
|
"Haven't I, North Wind? Oh! I'm so sorry! I thought I had.
|
|
What did I see then?"
|
|
|
|
"Only a picture of it. The real country at my real back is ever
|
|
so much more beautiful than that. You shall see it one day--
|
|
perhaps before very long."
|
|
|
|
"Do they sing songs there?"
|
|
|
|
"Don't you remember the dream you had about the little boys that dug
|
|
for the stars?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, that I do. I thought you must have had something to do
|
|
with that dream, it was so beautiful."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I gave you that dream."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! thank you. Did you give Nanny her dream too--about the moon
|
|
and the bees?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I was the lady that sat at the window of the moon."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, thank you. I was almost sure you had something to do with that too.
|
|
And did you tell Mr. Raymond the story about the Princess Daylight?"
|
|
|
|
"I believe I had something to do with it. At all events he thought
|
|
about it one night when he couldn't sleep. But I want to ask you
|
|
whether you remember the song the boy-angels sang in that dream
|
|
of yours."
|
|
|
|
"No. I couldn't keep it, do what I would, and I did try."
|
|
|
|
"That was my fault."
|
|
|
|
"How could that be, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I didn't know it properly myself, and so I couldn't teach it
|
|
to you. I could only make a rough guess at something like what it
|
|
would be, and so I wasn't able to make you dream it hard enough
|
|
to remember it. Nor would I have done so if I could, for it was
|
|
not correct. I made you dream pictures of it, though. But you
|
|
will hear the very song itself when you do get to the back of----"
|
|
|
|
"My own dear North Wind," said Diamond, finishing the sentence
|
|
for her, and kissing the arm that held him leaning against her.
|
|
|
|
"And now we've settled all this--for the time, at least,"
|
|
said North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"But I can't feel quite sure yet," said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"You must wait a while for that. Meantime you may be hopeful,
|
|
and content not to be quite sure. Come now, I will take you home again,
|
|
for it won't do to tire you too much."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no, no. I'm not the least tired," pleaded Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"It is better, though."
|
|
|
|
"Very well; if you wish it," yielded Diamond with a sigh.
|
|
|
|
"You are a dear good, boy" said North Wind. "I will come for you
|
|
again to-morrow night and take you out for a longer time. We shall
|
|
make a little journey together, in fact. We shall start earlier.
|
|
and as the moon will be, later, we shall have a little moonlight all
|
|
the way."
|
|
|
|
She rose, and swept over the meadow and the trees. In a few moments
|
|
the Mound appeared below them. She sank a little, and floated
|
|
in at the window of Diamond's room. There she laid him on his bed,
|
|
covered him over, and in a moment he was lapt in a dreamless sleep.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVII
|
|
|
|
ONCE MORE
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE next night Diamond was seated by his open window, with his head
|
|
on his hand, rather tired, but so eagerly waiting for the promised
|
|
visit that he was afraid he could not sleep. But he started suddenly,
|
|
and found that he had been already asleep. He rose, and looking
|
|
out of the window saw something white against his beech-tree. It
|
|
was North Wind. She was holding by one hand to a top branch.
|
|
Her hair and her garments went floating away behind her over the tree,
|
|
whose top was swaying about while the others were still.
|
|
|
|
"Are you ready, Diamond?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," answered Diamond, "quite ready."
|
|
|
|
In a moment she was at the window, and her arms came in and took him.
|
|
She sailed away so swiftly that he could at first mark nothing but
|
|
the speed with which the clouds above and the dim earth below went
|
|
rushing past. But soon he began to see that the sky was very lovely,
|
|
with mottled clouds all about the moon, on which she threw faint
|
|
colours like those of mother-of-pearl, or an opal. The night was warm,
|
|
and in the lady's arms he did not feel the wind which down below was
|
|
making waves in the ripe corn, and ripples on the rivers and lakes.
|
|
At length they descended on the side of an open earthy hill,
|
|
just where, from beneath a stone, a spring came bubbling out.
|
|
|
|
"I am going to take you along this little brook," said North Wind.
|
|
"I am not wanted for anything else to-night, so I can give you
|
|
a treat."
|
|
|
|
She stooped over the stream and holding Diamond down close to the
|
|
surface of it, glided along level with its flow as it ran down
|
|
the hill. And the song of the brook came up into Diamond's ears,
|
|
and grew and grew and changed with every turn. It seemed to Diamond
|
|
to be singing the story of its life to him. And so it was.
|
|
It began with a musical tinkle which changed to a babble and then
|
|
to a gentle rushing. Sometimes its song would almost cease, and then
|
|
break out again, tinkle, babble, and rush, all at once. At the bottom
|
|
of the hill they came to a small river, into which the brook flowed
|
|
with a muffled but merry sound. Along the surface of the river,
|
|
darkly clear below them in the moonlight, they floated; now, where it
|
|
widened out into a little lake, they would hover for a moment over
|
|
a bed of water-lilies, and watch them swing about, folded in sleep,
|
|
as the water on which they leaned swayed in the presence of North Wind;
|
|
and now they would watch the fishes asleep among their roots below.
|
|
Sometimes she would hold Diamond over a deep hollow curving
|
|
into the bank, that he might look far into the cool stillness.
|
|
Sometimes she would leave the river and sweep across a clover-field.
|
|
The bees were all at home, and the clover was asleep. Then she would
|
|
return and follow the river. It grew wider and wider as it went.
|
|
Now the armies of wheat and of oats would hang over its rush
|
|
from the opposite banks; now the willows would dip low branches
|
|
in its still waters; and now it would lead them through stately
|
|
trees and grassy banks into a lovely garden, where the roses
|
|
and lilies were asleep, the tender flowers quite folded up,
|
|
and only a few wide-awake and sending out their life in sweet,
|
|
strong odours. Wider and wider grew the stream, until they came
|
|
upon boats lying along its banks, which rocked a little in the
|
|
flutter of North Wind's garments. Then came houses on the banks,
|
|
each standing in a lovely lawn, with grand trees; and in parts
|
|
the river was so high that some of the grass and the roots of some
|
|
of the trees were under water, and Diamond, as they glided through
|
|
between the stems, could see the grass at the bottom of the water.
|
|
Then they would leave the river and float about and over the houses,
|
|
one after another--beautiful rich houses, which, like fine trees,
|
|
had taken centuries to grow. There was scarcely a light to be seen,
|
|
and not a movement to be heard: all the people in them lay
|
|
fast asleep.
|
|
|
|
"What a lot of dreams they must be dreaming!" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," returned North Wind. "They can't surely be all lies--
|
|
can they?"
|
|
|
|
"I should think it depends a little on who dreams them,"
|
|
suggested Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said North Wind. "The people who think lies, and do lies,
|
|
are very likely to dream lies. But the people who love what is true
|
|
will surely now and then dream true things. But then something
|
|
depends on whether the dreams are home-grown, or whether the seed
|
|
of them is blown over somebody else's garden-wall. Ah! there's
|
|
some one awake in this house!"
|
|
|
|
They were floating past a window in which a light was burning.
|
|
Diamond heard a moan, and looked up anxiously in North Wind's face.
|
|
|
|
"It's a lady," said North Wind. "She can't sleep for pain."
|
|
|
|
"Couldn't you do something for her?" said Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"No, I can't. But you could."
|
|
|
|
"What could I do?"
|
|
|
|
"Sing a little song to her."
|
|
|
|
"She wouldn't hear me."
|
|
|
|
"I will take you in, and then she will hear you."
|
|
|
|
"But that would be rude, wouldn't it? You can go where you please,
|
|
of course, but I should have no business in her room."
|
|
|
|
"You may trust me, Diamond. I shall take as good care of the lady
|
|
as of you. The window is open. Come."
|
|
|
|
By a shaded lamp, a lady was seated in a white wrapper,
|
|
trying to read, but moaning every minute. North Wind floated behind
|
|
her chair, set Diamond down, and told him to sing something.
|
|
He was a little frightened, but he thought a while, and then sang:--
|
|
|
|
The sun is gone down,
|
|
And the moon's in the sky;
|
|
But the sun will come up,
|
|
And the moon be laid by.
|
|
|
|
The flower is asleep
|
|
But it is not dead;
|
|
When the morning shines,
|
|
It will lift its head.
|
|
|
|
When winter comes,
|
|
It will die -- no, no;
|
|
It will only hide
|
|
From the frost and the snow.
|
|
|
|
Sure is the summer,
|
|
Sure is the sun;
|
|
The night and the winter
|
|
Are shadows that run.
|
|
|
|
The lady never lifted her eyes from her book, or her head from
|
|
her hand.
|
|
|
|
As soon as Diamond had finished, North Wind lifted him and carried
|
|
him away.
|
|
|
|
"Didn't the lady hear me?" asked Diamond when they were once more
|
|
floating down the river.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes, she heard you," answered North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Was she frightened then?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no."
|
|
|
|
"Why didn't she look to see who it was?"
|
|
|
|
"She didn't know you were there."
|
|
|
|
"How could she hear me then?"
|
|
|
|
"She didn't hear you with her ears."
|
|
|
|
"What did she hear me with?"
|
|
|
|
"With her heart."
|
|
|
|
"Where did she think the words came from?"
|
|
|
|
"She thought they came out of the book she was reading. She will
|
|
search all through it to-morrow to find them, and won't be able
|
|
to understand it at all."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, what fun!" said Diamond. "What will she do?"
|
|
|
|
"I can tell you what she won't do: she'll never forget the meaning
|
|
of them; and she'll never be able to remember the words of them."
|
|
|
|
"If she sees them in Mr. Raymond's book, it will puzzle her,
|
|
won't it?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, that it will. She will never be able to understand it."
|
|
|
|
"Until she gets to the back of the north wind," suggested Diamond.
|
|
|
|
"Until she gets to the back of the north wind," assented the lady.
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" cried Diamond, "I know now where we are. Oh! do let me go
|
|
into the old garden, and into mother's room, and Diamond's stall.
|
|
I wonder if the hole is at the back of my bed still. I should like
|
|
to stay there all the rest of the night. It won't take you long
|
|
to get home from here, will it, North Wind?"
|
|
|
|
"No," she answered; "you shall stay as long as you like."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, how jolly," cried Diamond, as North Wind sailed over the house
|
|
with him, and set him down on the lawn at the back.
|
|
|
|
Diamond ran about the lawn for a little while in the moonlight.
|
|
He found part of it cut up into flower-beds, and the little
|
|
summer-house with the coloured glass and the great elm-tree gone.
|
|
He did not like this, and ran into the stable. There were no
|
|
horses there at all. He ran upstairs. The rooms were empty.
|
|
The only thing left that he cared about was the hole in the wall
|
|
where his little bed had stood; and that was not enough to make him
|
|
wish to stop. He ran down the stair again, and out upon the lawn.
|
|
There he threw himself down and began to cry. It was all so dreary
|
|
and lost!
|
|
|
|
"I thought I liked the place so much," said Diamond to himself,
|
|
"but I find I don't care about it. I suppose it's only the people
|
|
in it that make you like a place, and when they're gone, it's dead,
|
|
and you don't care a bit about it. North Wind told me I might stop
|
|
as long as I liked, and I've stopped longer already. North Wind!"
|
|
he cried aloud, turning his face towards the sky.
|
|
|
|
The moon was under a cloud, and all was looking dull and dismal.
|
|
A star shot from the sky, and fell in the grass beside him.
|
|
The moment it lighted, there stood North Wind.
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" cried Diamond, joyfully, "were you the shooting star?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, my child."
|
|
|
|
"Did you hear me call you then?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"So high up as that?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I heard you quite well."
|
|
|
|
"Do take me home."
|
|
|
|
"Have you had enough of your old home already?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, more than enough. It isn't a home at all now."
|
|
|
|
"I thought that would be it," said North Wind. "Everything, dreaming
|
|
and all, has got a soul in it, or else it's worth nothing, and we
|
|
don't care a bit about it. Some of our thoughts are worth nothing,
|
|
because they've got no soul in them. The brain puts them into
|
|
the mind, not the mind into the brain."
|
|
|
|
"But how can you know about that, North Wind? You haven't got
|
|
a body."
|
|
|
|
"If I hadn't you wouldn't know anything about me. No creature can
|
|
know another without the help of a body. But I don't care to talk
|
|
about that. It is time for you to go home."
|
|
|
|
So saying, North Wind lifted Diamond and bore him away.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVIII
|
|
|
|
AT THE BACK OF THE NORTH WIND
|
|
|
|
|
|
I DID not see Diamond for a week or so after this, and then he told me
|
|
what I have now told you. I should have been astonished at his being able
|
|
even to report such conversations as he said he had had with North Wind,
|
|
had I not known already that some children are profound in metaphysics.
|
|
But a fear crosses me, lest, by telling so much about my friend,
|
|
I should lead people to mistake him for one of those consequential,
|
|
priggish little monsters, who are always trying to say clever things,
|
|
and looking to see whether people appreciate them. When a child
|
|
like that dies, instead of having a silly book written about him,
|
|
he should be stuffed like one of those awful big-headed fishes you see
|
|
in museums. But Diamond never troubled his head about what people
|
|
thought of him. He never set up for knowing better than others.
|
|
The wisest things he said came out when he wanted one to help
|
|
him with some difficulty he was in. He was not even offended
|
|
with Nanny and Jim for calling him a silly. He supposed there
|
|
was something in it, though he could not quite understand what.
|
|
I suspect however that the other name they gave him, God's Baby,
|
|
had some share in reconciling him to it.
|
|
|
|
Happily for me, I was as much interested in metaphysics as
|
|
Diamond himself, and therefore, while he recounted his conversations
|
|
with North Wind, I did not find myself at all in a strange sea,
|
|
although certainly I could not always feel the bottom, being indeed
|
|
convinced that the bottom was miles away.
|
|
|
|
"Could it be all dreaming, do you think, sir?" he asked anxiously.
|
|
|
|
"I daren't say, Diamond," I answered. "But at least there is one
|
|
thing you may be sure of, that there is a still better love than that
|
|
of the wonderful being you call North Wind. Even if she be a dream,
|
|
the dream of such a beautiful creature could not come to you by chance."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I know," returned Diamond; "I know."
|
|
|
|
Then he was silent, but, I confess, appeared more thoughtful
|
|
than satisfied.
|
|
|
|
The next time I saw him, he looked paler than usual.
|
|
|
|
"Have you seen your friend again?" I asked him.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he answered, solemnly.
|
|
|
|
"Did she take you out with her?"
|
|
|
|
"No. She did not speak to me. I woke all at once, as I generally
|
|
do when I am going to see her, and there she was against the door
|
|
into the big room, sitting just as I saw her sit on her own doorstep,
|
|
as white as snow, and her eyes as blue as the heart of an iceberg.
|
|
She looked at me, but never moved or spoke."
|
|
|
|
"Weren't you afraid?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"No. Why should I have been?" he answered. "I only felt a little cold."
|
|
|
|
"Did she stay long?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. I fell asleep again. I think I have been rather
|
|
cold ever since though," he added with a smile.
|
|
|
|
I did not quite like this, but I said nothing.
|
|
|
|
Four days after, I called again at the Mound. The maid who opened
|
|
the door looked grave, but I suspected nothing. When I reached
|
|
the drawing-room, I saw Mrs. Raymond had been crying.
|
|
|
|
"Haven't you heard?" she said, seeing my questioning looks.
|
|
|
|
"I've heard nothing," I answered.
|
|
|
|
"This morning we found our dear little Diamond lying on the floor
|
|
of the big attic-room, just outside his own door--fast asleep,
|
|
as we thought. But when we took him up, we did not think he was asleep.
|
|
We saw that----"
|
|
|
|
Here the kind-hearted lady broke out crying afresh.
|
|
|
|
"May I go and see him?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she sobbed. "You know your way to the top of the tower."
|
|
|
|
I walked up the winding stair, and entered his room. A lovely figure,
|
|
as white and almost as clear as alabaster, was lying on the bed.
|
|
I saw at once how it was. They thought he was dead. I knew that he
|
|
had gone to the back of the north wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of the Project Gutenberg Etext of At the Back of the North Wind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|